Selected quad for the lemma: conscience_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
conscience_n sin_n soul_n wound_v 2,163 5 9.3309 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A03342 CVIII lectures vpon the fourth of Iohn Preached at Ashby-Delazouch in Leicester-shire. By that late faithfull and worthy minister of Iesus Christ. Arthur Hildersam.; Lectures upon the fourth of John Hildersam, Arthur, 1563-1632.; Cotton, John, 1584-1652. 1632 (1632) STC 13462; ESTC S119430 700,546 622

There are 47 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

commit_v in_o secret_a corner_n they_o shall_v be_v publish_v on_o the_o house_n top_n the_o second_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v to_o exhort_v we_o to_o nourish_v in_o our_o heart_n continual_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o lord_n presence_n and_o privity_n to_o all_o our_o 2._o way_n to_o walk_v with_o he_o continual_o it_o be_v that_o that_o god_n require_v of_o abraham_n gen._n 17._o 1._o and_o that_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o enoch_n gen._n 5_o 22._o enoch_n walk_v with_o god_n for_o 1._o this_o be_v the_o best_a mean_n to_o purge_v the_o heart_n from_o hypocrisy_n and_o make_v it_o upright_o walk_v before_o i_o and_o be_v thou_o perfect_a say_v the_o lord_n gen._n 17._o 1._o and_o therefore_o uprightness_n of_o heart_n be_v thus_o describe_v it_o be_v say_v of_o david_n 1._o king_n 3._o 6._o he_o walk_v before_o god_n in_o truth_n and_o in_o righteousness_n and_o in_o uprightness_n of_o heart_n and_o of_o hezekiah_n isaiah_n 38._o 3._o i_o have_v walk_v before_o thou_o in_o truth_n and_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n that_o which_o make_v they_o so_o upright_o and_o void_a of_o hypocrisy_n in_o all_o their_o way_n be_v this_o that_o they_o do_v walk_v before_o god_n and_o have_v he_o always_o in_o their_o eye_n 2._o it_o will_v yield_v unspeakable_a comfort_n to_o the_o conscience_n even_o in_o affliction_n this_o be_v job_n comfort_v behold_v my_o witness_n be_v in_o heaven_n say_v he_o job_n 16._o 19_o and_o my_o record_n be_v on_o high_a and_o also_o hezekiahs_n isaiah_n 38._o 3._o the_o mean_n to_o try_v whether_o we_o walk_v with_o god_n and_o be_v persuade_v of_o his_o presence_n be_v this_o 1._o when_o a_o man_n be_v the_o same_o alone_a and_o in_o company_n when_o the_o sin_n that_o i_o will_v not_o commit_v in_o the_o presence_n and_o knowledge_n of_o man_n i_o forbear_v to_o do_v it_o when_o i_o be_o by_o myself_o alone_o and_o have_v opportunity_n to_o commit_v it_o safe_o and_o secret_o thus_o joseph_n show_v that_o he_o walk_v with_o god_n he_o dare_v not_o sin_n against_o god_n in_o that_o sin_n that_o he_o be_v most_o strong_o tempt_v unto_o though_o he_o have_v opportunity_n to_o have_v commit_v it_o secret_o enough_o gen._n 39_o 9_o 11._o 2._o when_o the_o good_a duty_n i_o use_v to_o perform_v in_o open_a place_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o other_o i_o accustom_v myself_o to_o they_o in_o secret_a this_o our_o saviour_n prescribe_v matth._n 6._o 6._o thou_o when_o thou_o pray_v say_v he_o enter_v into_o thy_o closet_n and_o when_o thou_o have_v shut_v thy_o door_n pray_v to_o thy_o father_n which_o be_v in_o secret_a lecture_n the_o fifteen_o june_n 6._o 1609._o it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o two_o last_o point_n in_o this_o text_n 1._o the_o sin_n he_o charge_v she_o with_o be_v the_o sin_n of_o fornication_n she_o now_o live_v in_o 2._o though_o he_o know_v she_o live_v in_o this_o sin_n he_o reject_v she_o not_o where_o first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o though_o he_o tell_v she_o of_o the_o five_o husband_n she_o have_v have_v yet_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o to_o charge_v she_o with_o that_o as_o with_o a_o sin_n but_o only_o with_o this_o that_o the_o man_n she_o now_o keep_v be_v not_o her_o husband_n for_o howsoever_o it_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o papist_n who_o never_o give_v the_o ecclesiastical_a blessing_n to_o second_o marriage_n and_o of_o all_o carnal_a and_o worldly_a man_n who_o be_v ever_o apt_a to_o judge_v profane_o and_o unreverent_o of_o god_n holy_a ordinance_n in_o the_o state_n of_o wedlock_n yet_o be_v it_o no_o disgrace_n to_o a_o christian_a woman_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n if_o the_o necessity_n or_o conveniency_n of_o her_o state_n shall_v call_v she_o unto_o it_o to_o have_v have_v five_o husband_n so_o that_o the_o sin_n that_o christ_n charge_v she_o with_o be_v not_o that_o she_o have_v have_v five_o husband_n but_o that_o the_o man_n she_o now_o have_v be_v not_o her_o husband_n this_o be_v evident_a by_o four_o reason_n first_o the_o apostle_n give_v liberty_n to_o every_o widow_n to_o marry_v again_o 1._o cor._n 7._o 39_o the_o wife_n be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n so_o long_o as_o her_o husband_n live_v but_o if_o her_o husband_n be_v dead_a she_o be_v at_o liberty_n to_o marry_v with_o who_o she_o will_v only_o in_o the_o lord_n 2._o he_o call_v the_o marriage_n of_o all_o person_n honourable_a heb._n 13._o 4._o 3._o he_o call_v it_o a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n to_o condemn_v it_o or_o hold_v it_o unlawful_a 1._o tim._n 4._o 1._o 3._o and_o 4._o he_o command_v it_o in_o some_o case_n 1._o tim._n 5._o 14._o where_o he_o speak_v of_o widow_n only_o i_o will_v therefore_o say_v he_o that_o the_o young_a woman_n marry_v and_o bear_v child_n if_o any_o shall_v object_v 1_o tim._n 5_o 9_o that_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v none_o to_o be_v choose_v for_o a_o church-widdow_n that_o have_v have_v above_o one_o husband_n which_o argue_v that_o he_o esteem_v it_o some_o blot_n or_o infamy_n unto_o a_o christian_a woman_n to_o have_v have_v more_o husband_n than_o one_o i_o answer_v that_o he_o exclude_v only_o such_o woman_n as_o be_v unjust_o divorce_v as_o many_o be_v in_o those_o day_n be_v during_o the_o life_n of_o their_o first_o husband_n marry_v to_o another_o man_n so_o that_o the_o fault_n he_o note_v there_o be_v the_o same_o which_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o mark_v 10._o 12._o if_o a_o woman_n shall_v put_v away_o her_o husband_n and_o be_v marry_v to_o another_o she_o commit_v advicery_a now_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o our_o saviour_n when_o he_o will_v effectual_o touch_v the_o conscience_n of_o this_o woman_n with_o the_o sense_n of_o sin_n and_o bring_v she_o to_o repentance_n charge_v she_o not_o with_o all_o the_o sin_n he_o know_v by_o she_o though_o undoubted_o he_o know_v many_o and_o intend_v also_o to_o draw_v she_o from_o all_o her_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o from_o one_o and_o when_o she_o repent_v true_o of_o this_o one_o sin_n she_o repent_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n yet_o i_o say_v he_o do_v not_o tell_v she_o here_o of_o all_o her_o sin_n but_o as_o he_o have_v be_v also_o wont_a to_o deal_v with_o other_o of_o his_o servant_n in_o the_o like_a case_n of_o the_o huge_a heap_n of_o her_o innumerable_a sin_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o one_o principal_a and_o chief_a one_o and_o lay_v that_o only_a to_o her_o charge_n press_v that_o only_a upon_o her_o conscience_n and_o this_o one_o principal_a and_o chief_a sin_n which_o among_o all_o her_o sin_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o for_o this_o purpose_n be_v the_o fornication_n she_o live_v in_o from_o hence_o then_o arise_v this_o instruction_n that_o among_o all_o the_o sin_n that_o man_n be_v give_v unto_o fornication_n be_v a_o principal_a doct._n sin_n and_o will_v lie_v more_o heavy_a upon_o the_o conscience_n and_o wound_v the_o soul_n more_o deep_o than_o other_o sin_n when_o god_n shall_v once_o effectual_o discover_v it_o to_o a_o man_n and_o charge_v he_o with_o it_o see_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o in_o job_n 31._o where_o be_v drive_v partly_o by_o the_o heavy_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o lie_v upon_o he_o partly_o by_o the_o unjust_a accusation_n of_o his_o friend_n that_o charge_v he_o to_o be_v a_o hypocrite_n to_o enter_v into_o a_o serious_a examination_n of_o the_o life_n that_o he_o have_v lead_v there_o be_v no_o one_o thing_n that_o he_o can_v find_v in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o life_n that_o he_o take_v so_o much_o comfort_n in_o as_o this_o that_o he_o have_v ever_o make_v conscience_n of_o and_o keep_v himself_o free_a from_o this_o sin_n and_o therefore_o have_v begin_v with_o it_o verse_n 1._o to_o the_o 4._o he_o speak_v of_o it_o again_o verse_n 9_o to_o 12._o but_o mark_v what_o reason_n he_o give_v why_o he_o be_v so_o afraid_a of_o this_o sin_n above_o other_o verse_n 2._o for_o what_o portion_n shall_v i_o have_v of_o god_n from_o above_o and_o what_o inheritance_n of_o the_o almighty_a from_o on_o high_a verse_n 3._o be_v not_o destruction_n to_o the_o wicked_a and_o strange_a punishment_n to_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n and_o verse_n 11._o for_o this_o a_o heinous_a crime_n say_v he_o yea_o it_o be_v a_o iniquity_n to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o judge_n verse_n 12._o yea_o this_o be_v a_o fire_n that_o shall_v devour_v to_o destruction_n and_o which_o shall_v root_v out_o all_o my_o increase_n the_o reason_n whereby_o this_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v not_o only_o a_o sin_n but_o one_o reason_n of_o the_o heavy_a and_o most_o fearful_a sin_n that_o a_o man_n can_v be_v guilty_a of_o be_v principal_o four_o 1._o it_o
have_v a_o burn_a and_o scorch_a heat_n in_o it_o the_o lord_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o just_a anger_n against_o sin_n be_v call_v a_o consume_a fire_n heb._n 12._o 29._o and_o the_o sting_n of_o conscience_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o sin_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o sting_n of_o the_o fiery_a serpent_n joh._n 3._o 14_o 15._o which_o make_v job_n chap._n 30._o 30._o say_v his_o bone_n be_v burn_v with_o heat_n 2._o there_o be_v no_o man_n but_o at_o one_o time_n or_o other_o here_o or_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o god_n anger_n provoke_v by_o his_o sin_n the_o most_o sleepy_a blind_a and_o senseless_a conscience_n shall_v be_v one_o day_n awaken_v for_o so_o we_o read_v eccl._n 12._o 14._o god_n shall_v bring_v every_o work_n into_o judgement_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o evil_n and_o psal._n 50._o 21._o i_o will_v reprove_v thou_o and_o set_v they_o in_o order_n before_o thou_o jer._n 2._o 19_o thou_o own_o wickedness_n shall_v correct_v thou_o know_v therefore_o and_o behold_v that_o it_o be_v a_o evil_a thing_n and_o bitter_a that_o thou_o have_v forsake_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n this_o doctrine_n serve_v to_o warn_v every_o man_n to_o provide_v against_o this_o thirst_n consider_v thou_o must_v one_o day_n feel_v either_o the_o thirst_n of_o god_n elect_n or_o that_o of_o use._n the_o reprobate_n be_v not_o so_o foolish_a as_o to_o think_v thou_o shall_v never_o feel_v any_o such_o heat_n in_o thyself_o but_o be_v assure_v thou_o must_v one_o day_n feel_v what_o it_o be_v to_o have_v offend_v god_n it_o have_v be_v a_o proverb_n that_o man_n use_v to_o put_v other_o man_n fault_n in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o wallet_n that_o be_v before_o they_o and_o have_v they_o ever_o in_o their_o eye_n but_o their_o own_o in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o wallet_n that_o hang_v behind_o they_o but_o be_v not_o deceive_v be_v thou_o assure_v god_n will_v turn_v the_o wallet_n one_o day_n thy_o old_a sin_n the_o sin_n thou_o have_v forget_v if_o thou_o have_v not_o repent_v of_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v into_o thy_o remembrance_n again_o the_o sin_n thou_o find_v most_o pleasure_v in_o thou_o shall_v feel_v the_o bitterness_n of_o one_o day_n either_o here_o or_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v it_o be_v thus_o with_o god_n dear_a servant_n job_n job_n 13._o 26._o thou_o write_v bitter_a thing_n against_o i_o and_o make_v i_o to_o possess_v the_o iniquity_n of_o my_o youth_n then_o thou_o shall_v feel_v a_o thirst_n in_o thy_o soul_n and_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o thou_o have_v despise_v piety_n and_o religion_n the_o more_o vehement_a shall_v thy_o thirst_n be_v in_o that_o day_n provide_v for_o this_o thirst_n i_o advise_v thou_o choose_v rather_o to_o have_v david_n thirst_n in_o this_o life_n then_o dives_fw-la thirst_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v yea_o choose_v rather_o to_o bring_v thy_o sin_n into_o thy_o remembrance_n thy_o own_o self_n then_o that_o the_o lord_n shall_v do_v it_o for_o heb._n 10_o 31._o it_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o live_a god_n but_o alas_o most_o man_n instead_o of_o provide_v for_o the_o quench_n of_o this_o thirst_n do_v by_o desperate_a continue_v and_o increase_v in_o sin_n laborall_a they_o can_v to_o add_v fuel_n to_o this_o fire_n and_o increase_v this_o thirst_n as_o drunkard_n use_v it_o be_v the_o comparison_n the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v deut._n 29._o 19_o by_o all_o mean_v they_o can_v to_o provoke_v thirst_n that_o they_o may_v drink_v the_o more_o but_o know_v assure_o that_o proportionable_a to_o the_o number_n and_o heinousness_n of_o they_o sin_n will_v thy_o heat_n and_o thirst_n be_v and_o to_o these_o man_n i_o may_v say_v as_o esa._n 50._o 11._o behold_v all_o you_o that_o kindle_v a_o fire_n that_o compass_n yourselves_o about_o with_o spark_n walk_v you_o in_o the_o light_n of_o your_o fire_n and_o in_o the_o spark_n that_o you_o have_v kindle_v this_o shall_v you_o have_v of_o my_o hand_n you_o shall_v lie_v down_o in_o sorrow_n say_v not_o this_o be_v a_o hard_a doctrine_n and_o tend_v to_o terror_n mislike_v it_o not_o for_o that_o oh_o that_o the_o lord_n will_v so_o follow_v it_o and_o so_o press_v it_o upon_o our_o conscience_n that_o it_o may_v work_v fear_n in_o you_o nothing_o be_v more_o wholesome_a and_o profitable_a for_o we_o in_o this_o secure_a age_n than_o this_o fear_n prou._n 28._o 14._o happy_a be_v the_o man_n that_o fear_v always_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o paul_n to_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n 2._o cor._n 5._o 11._o and_o if_o paul_n have_v need_v of_o they_o much_o more_o have_v we_o this_o be_v the_o mean_a to_o keep_v thou_o from_o those_o everlasting_a fear_n hab._n 3._o 16._o i_o tremble_v in_o myself_o that_o i_o may_v rest_v in_o the_o day_n of_o trouble_n and_o thus_o much_o for_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o text._n the_o second_o point_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o it_o be_v the_o antithesis_fw-la that_o our_o saviour_n make_v between_o the_o water_n of_o jacob_n well_o and_o the_o water_n of_o life_n and_o this_o opposition_n hold_v true_a not_o between_o the_o water_n of_o jacob_n well_o only_o but_o between_o all_o other_o thing_n and_o the_o water_n of_o life_n for_o he_o make_v it_o the_o peculiar_a and_o proper_a effect_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n to_o quench_v this_o thirst_n from_o whence_o we_o learn_v that_o no_o worldly_a thing_n 2._o can_v perfect_o and_o full_o quench_v the_o thirst_n of_o the_o soul_n i_o can_v deny_v but_o there_o be_v many_o wicked_a man_n who_o never_o taste_v of_o other_o then_o worldly_a comfort_n that_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v as_o much_o peace_n and_o quietness_n in_o their_o conscience_n as_o any_o man_n in_o the_o world_n have_v job_n 21._o 9_o their_o house_n be_v peaceable_a and_o without_o fear_n psal._n 73._o 5._o they_o be_v not_o in_o trouble_n as_o other_o man_n be_v luke_n 11._o 21._o when_o the_o strong_a man_n keep_v possession_n of_o the_o house_n all_o thing_n be_v in_o peace_n yea_o such_o as_o have_v have_v this_o thirst_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v quench_v it_o well_o even_o by_o worldly_a mean_n neither_o do_v i_o deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v many_o worldly_a thing_n that_o for_o a_o time_n will_v seem_v to_o slake_v this_o thirst_n and_o quiet_a the_o heart_n that_o be_v trouble_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o sin_n 1._o sam._n 16._o 23._o when_o david_n play_v on_o the_o harp_n saul_n be_v refresh_v and_o ease_v and_o our_o own_o experience_n may_v tell_v we_o of_o some_o that_o have_v have_v much_o trouble_n of_o mind_n for_o sin_n and_o this_o vehement_a thirst_n that_o yet_o now_o by_o give_v over_o their_o precise_a course_n and_o give_v themselves_o to_o worldly_a mirth_n be_v as_o quiet_a in_o their_o mind_n as_o any_o man_n live_v yet_o can_v no_o worldly_a thing_n sound_o quench_v the_o thirst_n of_o the_o soul_n nor_o satisfy_v the_o heart_n that_o desire_v comfort_n against_o the_o sting_n of_o conscience_n and_o sense_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o to_o such_o as_o make_v such_o reckon_n of_o worldly_a help_n in_o this_o case_n i_o may_v say_v as_o esa._n 55._o 2._o why_o do_v you_o labour_v for_o that_o which_o satisfy_v not_o for_o as_o the_o promise_n be_v make_v only_o to_o the_o godly_a psal._n 8●…_n 8._o he_o will_v speak_v peace_n to_o his_o people_n and_o to_o his_o saint_n so_o of_o every_o wicked_a man_n it_o be_v say_v esa._n 57_o 21._o there_o be_v no_o peace_n to_o the_o wicked_a yea_o of_o every_o natural_a man_n rom._n 3._o 17._o the_o way_n of_o peace_n they_o have_v not_o know_v what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o to_o the_o peace_n of_o wicked_a man_n sure_o either_o it_o grow_v from_o senselessness_n they_o never_o yet_o know_v what_o sin_n be_v they_o never_o feel_v the_o heat_n of_o the_o sting_n of_o conscience_n and_o sense_n of_o god_n anger_n and_o then_o how_o can_v it_o be_v say_v their_o thirst_n be_v quench_v that_o never_o feel_v any_o thirst_n their_o case_n be_v describe_v esa._n 29._o 8._o a_o man_n dream_v and_o lo_o he_o be_v drink_v but_o when_o he_o awaken_v behold_v he_o be_v faint_a and_o his_o soul_n long_v 2._o or_o else_o if_o ever_o they_o have_v this_o heat_n and_o feel_v this_o thirst_n the_o peace_n and_o joy_n they_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o face_n only_o and_o not_o in_o the_o heart_n 2._o cor._n 5._o 12._o do_v you_o not_o think_v that_o many_o a_o man_n that_o make_v show_v of_o great_a jollity_n and_o mirth_n have_v his_o inward_a stinging_n and_o gripe_n of_o
4._o but_o let_v every_o man_n prove_v his_o own_o work_n and_o then_o shall_v he_o have_v rejoice_v in_o himself_o and_o not_o in_o another_o the_o more_o precious_a this_o treasure_n be_v the_o more_o need_n thou_o have_v to_o take_v heed_n thou_o be_v not_o deceive_v in_o it_o as_o the_o wise_a merchant_n do_v when_o he_o have_v find_v the_o true_a treasure_n he_o hide_v it_o and_o for_o joy_n thereof_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d subducit_fw-la sese_fw-la he_o withdraw_v himself_o to_o consider_v well_o and_o try_v whether_o it_o be_v true_a treasure_n indeed_o before_o he_o sell_v all_o that_o he_o have_v to_o buy_v the_o field_n where_o it_o be_v matth._n 13._o 44._o 3._o thou_o may_v if_o thou_o will_v try_v certain_o discern_v this_o 1._o cor._n 2._o 12._o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v we_o to_o that_o end_n that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v give_v we_o of_o god_n some_o rule_v i_o will_v give_v thou_o whereby_o thou_o may_v know_v whether_o the_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o grace_n indeed_o 1._o if_o they_o be_v do_v by_o the_o direction_n and_o warrant_n of_o the_o word_n thus_o be_v josias_n goodness_n commend_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v true_a goodness_n indeed_o it_o be_v according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n as_o we_o read_v 2._o chron._n 35._o 26._o 2._o if_o thy_o intent_n in_o do_v of_o they_o be_v to_o please_v serve_v and_o honour_n god_n not_o to_o serve_v thyself_o or_o man_n by_o this_o note_n the_o apostle_n describe_v truth_n of_o grace_n both_o in_o himself_o and_o in_o other_o of_o himself_o he_o say_v gal._n 1._o 10._o that_o he_o do_v not_o in_o his_o ministry_n seek_v to_o please_v man_n but_o that_o he_o serve_v god_n in_o his_o spirit_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n rom._n 1._o 9_o and_o of_o other_o he_o say_v rom._n 14._o 6._o that_o he_o that_o do_v either_o regard_n or_o not_o regard_v a_o day_n be_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v or_o judge_v a_o hypocrite_n so_o long_o as_o he_o do_v that_o which_o he_o do_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o a_o care_n to_o please_v and_o approve_v himself_o unto_o he_o 3._o if_o thou_o do_v what_o thou_o do_v in_o love_n to_o he_o because_o thou_o know_v how_o much_o he_o be_v delight_v with_o and_o honour_a by_o thy_o obedience_n for_o the_o apostle_n say_v gal._n 5._o 6._o that_o that_o be_v true_a faith_n and_o such_o as_o will_v avail_v a_o man_n and_o stand_v he_o in_o stead_n that_o work_v by_o love_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o do_v every_o good_a work_n that_o he_o do_v out_o of_o love_n unto_o god_n and_o our_o saviour_n by_o this_o argument_n comfort_v peter_n and_o assure_v he_o that_o the_o fall_n that_o he_o have_v take_v be_v not_o unto_o perdition_n because_o as_o he_o prove_v by_o appeal_n to_o his_o own_o conscience_n joh._n 21._o 15._o there_o be_v still_o notwithstanding_o he_o deny_v he_o with_o his_o mouth_n in_o his_o heart_n a_o unfeigned_a love_n unto_o he_o 4._o ifthou_fw-mi do_v what_o thou_o do_v of_o faith_n and_o the_o love_n thou_o bear_v to_o he_o grow_v from_o thy_o assurance_n that_o he_o love_v thou_o in_o christ_n and_o that_o thou_o be_v his_o child_n that_o he_o have_v forgive_v thou_o all_o thy_o sin_n this_o be_v the_o root_n of_o marios_n love_n luke_n 7._o 47._o she_o love_v much_o because_o she_o know_v many_o sin_n be_v forgive_v she_o 3._o to_o exhort_v such_o as_o have_v receive_v any_o grace_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o go_v back_o this_o doctrine_n tend_v not_o to_o licentiousness_n as_o papist_n slander_v it_o for_o 3._o 1._o we_o grant_v the_o best_a may_v fall_v and_o can_v choose_v but_o fall_n unless_o he_o take_v great_a heed_n 2._o god_n will_v be_v as_o angry_a with_o their_o sin_n and_o correct_v they_o as_o sharp_o as_o other_o god_n be_v very_o terrible_a in_o the_o assembly_n of_o his_o saint_n say_v the_o prophet_n psal._n 89._o 7._o as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o example_n of_o his_o severity_n towards_o david_n 2._o sam._n 13._o 11._o 12._o though_o they_o can_v fall_v to_o death_n they_o may_v receive_v such_o bruise_n and_o maim_n as_o they_o shall_v never_o claw_n of_o haply_o while_o they_o live_v and_o loose_v the_o sense_n of_o god_n favour_n which_o they_o esteem_v more_o of_o then_o of_o all_o the_o world_n david_n profess_v psal._n 46._o 7._o that_o there_o be_v no_o joy_n in_o the_o world_n comparable_a unto_o the_o joy_n that_o he_o find_v thy_o love_n be_v better_a than_o wine_n say_v the_o spouse_n cant._n 1._o 2._o 3._o if_o ever_o they_o recover_v as_o they_o that_o ever_o have_v truth_n of_o grace_n shall_v certain_o do_v yet_o they_o shall_v do_v it_o with_o more_o difficulty_n than_o any_o other_o sinner_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o david_n psal._n 51._o observe_v therefore_o and_o take_v heed_n of_o those_o thing_n whereby_o the_o good_a estate_n of_o thy_o soul_n may_v be_v impair_v and_o those_o be_v two_o principal_o 1._o as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o state_n of_o the_o body_n withhold_v food_n and_o rest_n and_o exercise_v from_o it_o and_o the_o strong_a body_n will_v decay_v so_o be_v it_o with_o the_o state_n of_o the_o soul_n withhold_v from_o it_o the_o mean_n of_o grace_n and_o it_o will_v decay_v 1_o thess._n 5._o 19_o 20._o if_o prophecying_n be_v despise_v the_o spirit_n will_v be_v quench_v yea_o pro._n 29._o 18._o where_o there_o be_v no_o vision_n the_o people_n will_v decay_v yea_o heb._n 3._o 13._o if_o we_o do_v not_o daily_o by_o all_o good_a mean_n exhort_v and_o stir_v up_o ourselves_o we_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v harden_v 2._o as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o body_n by_o poison_v or_o wound_v it_o the_o life_n of_o it_o if_o it_o be_v not_o quite_o take_v away_o yet_o will_v be_v endanger_v and_o the_o health_n and_o strength_n of_o it_o impair_v great_o so_o it_o be_v with_o the_o soul_n by_o sin_v against_o conscience_n which_o be_v as_o poison_v and_o a_o stab_v give_v unto_o it_o it_o be_v great_o impair_v see_v this_o in_o david_n and_o peter_n after_o they_o have_v yield_v once_o to_o sin_n against_o their_o conscience_n they_o grow_v weak_a and_o weak_a more_o and_o more_o ungracious_a when_o david_n have_v once_o yield_v to_o his_o lust_n than_o he_o cloak_v it_o and_o add_v sin_n to_o sin_n in_o a_o strange_a manner_n peter_z when_o he_o have_v deny_v once_o his_o master_n than_o he_o do_v it_o with_o oath_n and_o execration_n and_o strange_a impudence_n the_o twelve_o lecture_n on_o april_n xxv_o mdcix_o joh._n four_o xv._n the_o woman_n faith_n unto_o he_o sir_n give_v i_o this_o water_n that_o i_o thirst_v not_o neither_o come_v hither_o to_o draw_v our_o saviour_n have_v in_o the_o two_o former_a verse_n prove_v that_o the_o water_n of_o life_n which_o he_o have_v to_o give_v be_v far_o more_o excellent_a than_o the_o water_n of_o jacob_n well_o this_o poor_a woman_n though_o she_o have_v before_o object_v and_o reason_v against_o it_o be_v now_o through_o the_o divine_a power_n that_o she_o feel_v in_o his_o word_n convince_a and_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v indeed_o a_o water_n to_o give_v that_o be_v better_a than_o that_o of_o jacob_n well_o which_o he_o that_o have_v once_o drink_v of_o shall_v never_o thirst_v again_o and_o out_o of_o this_o persuasion_n she_o have_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o he_o have_v say_v she_o do_v now_o bear_v a_o reverend_a estimation_n to_o his_o person_n who_o at_o first_o she_o esteem_v base_o of_o as_o of_o a_o ordinary_a jew_n she_o desire_v this_o water_n that_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o sir_n give_v i_o of_o that_o water_n yet_o still_o conceive_v that_o this_o thirst_n he_o have_v speak_v of_o be_v but_o the_o thirst_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o water_n of_o life_n but_o a_o material_a water_n she_o desire_v it_o only_o out_o of_o a_o carnal_a respect_n she_o have_v to_o her_o own_o profit_n and_o ease_n for_o so_o she_o say_v sir_n give_v i_o of_o that_o water_n that_o i_o may_v not_o thirst_v and_o come_v hither_o to_o draw_v first_o then_o in_o that_o this_o woman_n be_v yet_o a_o natural_a and_o wicked_a woman_n believe_v now_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n like_v it_o and_o be_v affect_v with_o it_o and_o desire_v this_o water_n he_o have_v speak_v of_o and_o yet_o do_v all_o this_o in_o a_o carnal_a respect_n to_o her_o profit_n and_o ease_n we_o learn_v that_o the_o principal_a thing_n the_o natural_a man_n respect_v doct._n in_o the_o affection_n he_o seem_v to_o bear_v unto_o the_o word_n be_v his_o carnal_a ease_n and_o contentment_n
be_v not_o only_o a_o sin_n but_o a_o mother-sinne_n a_o cause_n of_o many_o other_o sin_n it_o draw_v man_n to_o many_o other_o sin_n yea_o to_o other_o most_o heinous_a sin_n pro._n 23._o 28._o she_o increase_v the_o transgression_n among_o man_n do_v not_o prostitute_v thy_o daughter_n say_v the_o lord_n levit._n 19_o 29._o to_o cause_v she_o to_o be_v a_o whore_n lest_o the_o land_n fall_v to_o whoredom_n and_o the_o land_n become_v full_a of_o wickedness_n 2._o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o sin_n but_o a_o punishment_n of_o other_o sin_n i_o may_v allege_v the_o punishment_n that_o god_n have_v be_v wont_a and_o will_v certain_o inflict_v on_o this_o sin_n but_o i_o reserve_v that_o to_o another_o place_n solomon_n in_o eccles._n 7._o 26._o speak_v of_o the_o woman_n who_o heart_n be_v as_o net_n and_o snare_n and_o who_o hand_n be_v as_o band_n he_o add_v he_o that_o be_v good_a before_o god_n shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o she_o but_o the_o sinner_n shall_v be_v take_v by_o she_o pro._n 22._o 14._o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o strange_a woman_n be_v as_o a_o deep_a pit_n he_o with_o who_o the_o lord_n be_v angry_a shall_v fall_v therein_o so_o rom._n 1._o 24._o speak_v of_o such_o as_o god_n give_v up_o to_o their_o heart_n lust_n and_o to_o uncleanness_n and_o verse_n 26._o to_o vile_a affection_n and_o verse_n 28._o to_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n he_o name_v the_o sin_n that_o provoke_v god_n to_o deal_v thus_o with_o they_o verse_n 28._o they_o regard_v not_o to_o know_v god_n and_o verse_n 21._o when_o they_o know_v god_n they_o glorify_v he_o not_o as_o god_n nor_o be_v thankful_a and_o therefore_o god_n give_v they_o up_o to_o this_o sin_n many_o speak_v much_o how_o this_o sin_n abound_v in_o such_o town_n where_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v most_o plentiful_o and_o powerful_o preach_v and_o think_v they_o have_v great_a advantage_n against_o religion_n for_o it_o but_o indeed_o this_o make_v much_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o lord_n can_v endure_v the_o contempt_n of_o it_o but_o use_v to_o punish_v it_o in_o this_o fearful_a manner_n and_o who_o be_v they_o that_o in_o such_o place_n fall_v into_o this_o sin_n sure_o such_o as_o either_o regard_n not_o to_o know_v god_n rom._n 1._o 28._o or_o if_o they_o do_v know_v he_o have_v not_o glorify_v he_o as_o they_o ought_v rom._n 1._o 21._o but_o have_v be_v hypocrite_n and_o nourish_v under_o the_o profession_n of_o religion_n some_o grievous_a sin_n whoso_o please_v god_n shall_v escape_v from_o she_o say_v solomon_n eccles._n 7._o 26._o but_o the_o sinner_n shall_v be_v take_v by_o she_o wonder_v rather_o there_o be_v not_o more_o taint_v with_o this_o sin_n see_v there_o be_v so_o many_o that_o regard_v not_o to_o hear_v and_o of_o those_o that_o do_v hear_v so_o many_o that_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o they_o hear_v 3._o there_o be_v no_o sin_n that_o be_v so_o direct_o opposite_a to_o sanctification_n and_o holiness_n as_o this_o sin_n therefore_o as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v every_o where_o call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o there_o be_v no_o one_o work_v wherein_o he_o show_v himself_o wheresoever_o he_o dwell_v more_o than_o in_o holiness_n so_o the_o wicked_a spirit_n be_v call_v the_o unclean_a spirit_n matth._n 12._o 43._o because_o there_o be_v no_o one_o sin_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v better_o know_v where_o he_o dwell_v and_o reign_v than_o uncleanness_n of_o all_o the_o sin_n that_o man_n commit_v there_o be_v no_o one_o that_o have_v more_o force_n to_o quench_v the_o spirit_n to_o dull_a and_o banish_v all_o grace_n out_o of_o the_o heart_n than_o this_o sin_n have_v see_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o 1._o thess._n 4._o 3._o 4._o 5._o for_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n even_o your_o sanctification_n that_o you_o shall_v abstain_v from_o fornication_n that_o every_o one_o of_o you_o shall_v know_v how_o to_o possess_v his_o vessel_n in_o sanctification_n and_o honour_n not_o in_o the_o lust_n of_o concupiscence_n even_o as_o the_o gentile_n that_o know_v not_o god_n verse_n 7._o for_o god_n have_v not_o call_v you_o unto_o uncleanness_n but_o unto_o holiness_n see_v how_o sottish_a solomon_n become_v after_o he_o have_v give_v himself_o to_o fleshly_a lust_n his_o nine_o turn_v away_o his_o heart_n after_o other_o god_n say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 1._o king_n 11._o 4._o and_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o perfect_a with_o the_o lord_n his_o god_n yea_o it_o put_v out_o the_o light_n and_o judgement_n that_o be_v in_o man_n by_o nature_n they_o that_o live_v in_o lust_n be_v give_v over_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v the_o apostl●…_n rom._n 1._o 28._o in_o a_o mind_n void_a of_o judgement_n 4._o there_o be_v no_o sin_n that_o be_v commit_v with_o such_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n as_o this_o be_v and_o therefore_o it_o must_v needs_o bring_v in_o the_o end_n more_o bitterness_n and_o anguish_n to_o the_o soul_n than_o other_o sin_n do_v for_o the_o more_o pleasure_n man_n have_v find_v in_o sin_n the_o more_o bitterness_n shall_v they_o find_v in_o their_o conscience_n one_o day_n for_o sin_n luke_n 6._o 25._o woe_n be_v to_o you_o that_o laugh_v now_o for_o you_o shall_v wail_v and_o weep_v and_o 16._o 25._o remember_v thou_o in_o thy_o life_n time_n receive_v thy_o pleasure_n now_o therefore_o thou_o be_v torment_v therefore_o the_o scripture_n speak_v so_o oft_o of_o the_o bitterness_n of_o this_o sin_n heb._n 12._o when_o he_o have_v say_v verse_n 15._o let_v no_o root_n of_o bitterness_n spring_v up_o and_o trouble_v you_o he_o add_v verse_n 16._o let_v there_o be_v no_o fornicator_n job_n 13._o 26._o when_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o verse_n he_o have_v say_v that_o the_o lord_n write_v bitter_a thing_n against_o he_o charge_v he_o with_o bitter_a sin_n he_o add_v what_o those_o bitter_a thing_n be_v thou_o cause_v i_o to_o possess_v the_o sin_n of_o my_o youth_n these_o trick_n of_o youth_n will_v be_v bitter_a to_o man_n one_o day_n pro._n 5._o 3._o the_o lip_n of_o a_o strange_a woman_n drop_n as_o the_o honey_n comb_n verse_n 4._o but_o the_o end_n of_o she_o be_v bitter_a as_o wormwood_n and_o sharp_a as_o a_o two_o edge_a sword_n eccles._n 7._o when_o he_o have_v say_v ver_n 25._o that_o he_o have_v compass_v about_o to_o know_v wickedness_n and_o folly_n the_o foolishness_n of_o madness_n he_o add_v verse_n 26._o i_o find_v more_o bitter_a than_o death_n the_o woman_n who_o heart_n be_v as_o net_n and_o snare_n etc._n etc._n lecture_n the_o sixteen_o june_n 13._o 1609._o it_o follow_v now_o that_o we_o come_v to_o the_o use_v that_o be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o doctrine_n we_o have_v hear_v touch_v the_o heinousness_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o fornication_n which_o the_o last_o day_n be_v prevent_v by_o the_o time_n we_o can_v not_o deliver_v and_o this_o doctrine_n serve_v 1._o to_o convince_v the_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n of_o they_o that_o live_v in_o this_o sin_n without_o fear_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a and_o all_o honest_a man_n complain_v of_o it_o that_o this_o sin_n abound_v every_o where_o yea_o many_o that_o esteem_v themselves_o christian_n read_v the_o word_n hear_v it_o come_v to_o such_o assembly_n as_o this_o sit_v before_o we_o and_o look_v we_o in_o the_o face_n when_o we_o speak_v against_o this_o sin_n do_v yet_o live_v in_o this_o sin_n and_o live_v secure_o in_o it_o as_o if_o all_o that_o be_v say_v out_o of_o god_n word_n against_o it_o be_v but_o a_o fable_n and_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o sure_o somewhat_o there_o be_v that_o deceive_v they_o that_o they_o can_v perceive_v it_o be_v so_o dangerous_a a_o matter_n to_o live_v in_o this_o sin_n as_o indeed_o it_o be_v it_o may_v true_o be_v say_v of_o all_o sin_n that_o satan_n draw_v a_o man_n to_o it_o and_o harden_v he_o in_o it_o by_o some_o error_n of_o his_o mind_n or_o other_o whereby_o he_o deceive_v he_o how_o draw_v he_o our_o first_o parent_n first_o to_o sin_n 1._o tim._n 2._o 14._o the_o woman_n be_v deceive_v and_o find_v in_o the_o transgression_n 2._o pet._n 3._o 17._o beware_v lest_o you_o be_v pluck_v away_o with_o the_o error_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o fall_v from_o your_o own_o steadfastness_n what_o be_v that_o that_o harden_v a_o man_n heart_n in_o sin_n the_o apostle_n will_v tell_v we_o heb._n 3._o 13._o lest_o any_o of_o you_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n what_o be_v those_o strong_a hold_n that_o keep_v the_o word_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n from_o enter_v into_o and_o conquer_a the_o heart_n of_o man_n the_o apostle_n will_v tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v certain_a imagination_n
religion_n all_o the_o jew_n do_v say_v so_o for_o the_o five_o and_o last_o question_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n though_o she_o have_v the_o opportunity_n of_o such_o a_o prophet_n desire_v to_o be_v instruct_v in_o this_o question_n and_o 5._o resolve_v in_o this_o doubt_n rather_o than_o in_o any_o other_o for_o 1._o she_o may_v well_o know_v by_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o atonement_n make_v between_o god_n and_o she_o nor_o remission_n obtain_v of_o this_o heinous_a sin_n that_o her_o conscience_n be_v now_o touch_v with_o remorse_n of_o but_o by_o a_o sacrifice_n all_o thing_n by_o the_o law_n be_v purge_v with_o blood_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o without_o shed_v of_o blood_n there_o be_v no_o remission_n heb._n 9_o 22._o 2._o she_o may_v well_o know_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v of_o no_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v offer_v to_o he_o in_o any_o other_o place_n then_o in_o that_o one_o place_n he_o have_v choose_v to_o put_v his_o name_n in_o mark_v how_o oft_o this_o commandment_n be_v repeat_v in_o one_o chapter_n deut._n 12._o 5_o 6_o 11_o 1_o 17_o 26_o 27._o yea_o she_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v account_n of_o all_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v offer_v in_o any_o other_o place_n beside_o that_o one_o place_n that_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o put_v his_o name_n there_o no_o better_o then_o of_o wilful_a murder_n levit._n 17._o 4._o have_v thus_o open_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o text_n let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o the_o instruction_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n intend_v to_o teach_v we_o in_o this_o verse_n first_o then_o in_o that_o this_o woman_n be_v not_o afraid_a of_o christ_n when_o she_o have_v find_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n that_o have_v search_v and_o trouble_v her_o conscience_n but_o desire_v further_a speech_n with_o he_o and_o seek_v to_o have_v her_o conscience_n heal_v by_o that_o very_a hand_n that_o have_v wound_v it_o we_o learn_v that_o he_o that_o have_v grace_n will_v not_o be_v afraid_a of_o or_o shun_v that_o ministry_n in_o which_o he_o have_v feel_v the_o power_n of_o god_n rebuke_v and_o judge_v he_o ransack_v 3._o and_o trouble_v his_o conscience_n for_o sin_n but_o of_o all_o other_o will_v desire_v it_o most_o see_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o in_o all_o sort_n of_o john_n hearer_n he_o have_v preach_v the_o law_n luke_n 3._o 7._o to_o 9_o yea_o luke_n 1._o 17._o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n yet_o see_v luke_n 3._o 10._o 12._o 14._o how_o all_o sort_n seek_v to_o he_o and_o depend_v upon_o he_o see_v this_o also_o in_o such_o as_o hear_v peter_n when_o by_o his_o ministry_n they_o have_v be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n with_o a_o effectual_a sight_n and_o sense_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n due_a to_o they_o for_o the_o same_o they_o run_v to_o he_o for_o comfort_n rather_o than_o to_o any_o other_o man_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n man_n and_o brethren_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v act_n 2._o 37._o this_o will_v better_o appear_v by_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o contrary_n ungodly_a man_n can_v endure_v such_o teacher_n as_o do_v with_o any_o power_n reprove_v sin_n and_o preach_v the_o law_n as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o ahab_n who_o for_o this_o cause_n can_v not_o endure_v micaiah_n 1._o king_n 22._o 8._o and_o of_o felix_n who_o when_o paul_n doctrine_n make_v his_o heart_n to_o tremble_v by_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n effectual_o and_o in_o a_o powerful_a manner_n of_o the_o chief_a sin_n he_o have_v be_v most_o give_v unto_o and_o of_o the_o dreadful_a judgement_n he_o must_v come_v to_o for_o they_o will_v hear_v he_o no_o more_o act._n 24._o 26._o but_o so_o will_v not_o they_o as_o we_o have_v hear_v that_o have_v truth_n of_o grace_n in_o they_o 1._o the_o sense_n of_o sin_n and_o trouble_v of_o conscience_n which_o god_n spirit_n work_v in_o the_o elect_n be_v ever_o mix_v with_o hope_n of_o mercy_n and_o sense_n of_o god_n reason_n love_n which_o keep_v they_o from_o fly_v from_o god_n or_o despair_v in_o his_o mercy_n psalm_n 2._o 11._o even_o in_o tremble_v they_o have_v some_o joy_n he_o be_v call_v the_o comforter_n even_o when_o he_o rebuke_n we_o for_o sin_n john_n 16._o 8_o 9_o when_o he_o make_v they_o mourn_v for_o their_o sin_n as_o for_o their_o own_o child_n yet_o he_o make_v they_o supplicate_v and_o seek_v to_o god_n zach._n 12._o 10._o you_o shall_v see_v this_o in_o peter_n he_o be_v deep_o touch_v with_o remorse_n for_o sin_n mark_v 14._o 75._o yet_o be_v he_o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n the_o forward_a in_o seek_v to_o christ_n though_o john_n do_v outrun_v he_o and_o get_v to_o the_o sepulchre_n before_o he_o yet_o go_v he_o first_o into_o the_o sepulchre_n to_o see_v that_o there_o that_o may_v confirm_v he_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n joh._n 20._o 6_o 7._o 2._o the_o experience_n he_o have_v that_o god_n work_v with_o such_o a_o minister_n must_v needs_o cause_v the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o reverence_n and_o like_v he_o and_o to_o expect_v a_o blessing_n from_o he_o rather_o than_o from_o another_o that_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o reverence_n which_o the_o unbeliever_n do_v show_v to_o the_o prophet_n when_o he_o be_v rebuke_v and_o judge_v of_o they_o 1._o corinthian_n 14._o 25._o this_o make_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v they_o and_o reverence_v they_o as_o able_a minister_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n not_o of_o the_o letter_n only_o but_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o god_n 2._o cor._n 3._o 6._o 3._o he_o know_v the_o lord_n manner_n have_v be_v to_o heal_v his_o servant_n by_o the_o very_a hand_n by_o which_o he_o have_v wound_v they_o the_o prophet_n gad_n be_v the_o man_n by_o who_o the_o lord_n send_v such_o a_o heavy_a message_n to_o david_n 1._o chron._n 21._o 10._o 15._o and_o he_o be_v also_o the_o man_n by_o who_o the_o lord_n give_v he_o comfort_n verse_n 18._o isaiah_n be_v the_o man_n by_o who_o the_o lord_n send_v such_o a_o message_n to_o ezechia_n as_o make_v he_o weep_v sore_n isaiah_n 38._o 3._o and_o isaiah_n be_v the_o man_n by_o who_o god_n give_v he_o comfort_n isaiah_n 38._o 4._o to_o 8._o 1._o this_o doctrine_n serve_v for_o a_o touchstone_n whereby_o every_o one_o may_v try_v whether_o he_o have_v any_o grace_n or_o be_v still_o a_o carnal_a man_n dead_a in_o his_o sin_n for_o use_v by_o the_o judgement_n thou_o have_v to_o discern_v of_o true_a preach_n and_o of_o the_o minister_n which_o be_v most_o to_o be_v affect_v thou_o may_v know_v thy_o own_o state_n if_o grace_n be_v in_o thy_o heart_n thou_o will_v affect_v that_o ministry_n the_o most_o not_o that_o delight_v or_o tickle_v the_o ear_n no_o nor_o that_o which_o only_o bring_v thou_o to_o knowledge_n but_o that_o wherein_o thou_o feel_v the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o god_n work_v upon_o thy_o heart_n rebuke_v thou_o for_o sin_n wound_v thy_o conscience_n and_o give_v thou_o no_o rest_n till_o it_o have_v reform_v thy_o heart_n this_o paul_n speak_v of_o his_o own_o ministry_n 1._o cor._n 2._o 4._o my_o preach_v say_v he_o stand_v not_o in_o the_o entice_a speech_n of_o man_n wisdom_n but_o in_o plain_a evidence_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o of_o power_n and_o make_v this_o a_o note_n of_o a_o able_a and_o sufficient_a minister_n 2._o cor._n 3._o 6._o and_o of_o the_o corinthian_n he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v carnal_a man_n because_o they_o affect_v such_o a_o ministry_n as_o have_v fine_a word_n but_o no_o power_n in_o it_o 1._o cor._n 3._o 4._o for_o though_o he_o name_v himself_o and_o apollos_n there_o he_o do_v it_o but_o figurative_o as_o he_o say_v 1._o cor._n 4._o 6._o but_o the_o man_n they_o affect_v be_v not_o paul_n nor_o apollo_n but_o their_o own_o vainglorious_a teacher_n who_o he_o describe_v i_o will_v come_v and_o know_v not_o the_o speech_n of_o these_o man_n that_o be_v puff_v up_o but_o the_o power_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o word_n but_o in_o power_n say_v he_o 1._o cor._n 4._o 19_o 20._o then_o the_o hearer_n that_o have_v grace_n when_o he_o come_v to_o a_o sermon_n come_v not_o to_o hear_v man_n but_o god_n not_o to_o hear_v what_o a_o man_n can_v say_v or_o to_o judge_v what_o gift_n the_o preacher_n have_v but_o to_o hear_v what_o the_o spirit_n speak_v to_o the_o church_n apoc._n 2._o 7._o he_o come_v with_o that_o mind_n that_o david_n do_v psalm_n 85._o 8._o i_o will_v hear_v what_o god_n the_o lord_n will_v speak_v 2._o this_o doctrine_n serve_v for_o reproof_n and_o to_o discover_v the_o
the_o man_n come_v see_v a_o man_n that_o have_v tell_v i_o all_o thing_n that_o ever_o i_o do_v the_o word_n therefore_o imply_v that_o somewhat_o that_o be_v mention_v before_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o she_o so_o sudden_a and_o hasty_a depart_n from_o christ_n and_o run_v into_o the_o city_n and_o what_o be_v that_o sure_o if_o we_o look_v back_o into_o the_o two_o former_a verse_n we_o shall_v find_v two_o cause_n of_o it_o 1._o because_o the_o di●…ciples_n be_v now_o come_v out_o of_o the_o city_n with_o meat_n for_o he_o and_o she_o think_v he_o will_v be_v go_v as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v eat_v somewhat_o therefore_o she_o make_v haste_n to_o go_v and_o call_v her_o neighbour_n for_o fear_v he_o shall_v be_v go_v before_o they_o can_v come_v 2._o because_o christ_n have_v plain_o tell_v she_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n therefore_o she_o go_v her_o way_n why_o but_o that_o shall_v rather_o have_v stay_v she_o still_o with_o he_o and_o make_v her_o desirous_a of_o further_a speech_n no_o very_o for_o she_o do_v undoubted_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v so_o indeed_o as_o he_o have_v say_v and_o her_o heart_n be_v so_o astonish_v with_o sudden_a joy_n and_o earnest_a desire_n to_o draw_v her_o neighbour_n to_o he_o that_o she_o can_v neither_o speak_v nor_o tarry_v any_o long_o but_o away_o she_o go_v into_o the_o city_n and_o tell_v her_o neighbour_n but_o why_o do_v she_o leave_v her_o pail_n behind_o she_o sure_o though_o she_o come_v to_o the_o well_o of_o purpose_n to_o fetch_v water_n and_o she_o have_v need_v and_o use_v of_o water_n for_o some_o work_n she_o have_v to_o do_v at_o home_n yet_o the_o joy_n she_o find_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o zealous_a desire_n she_o have_v to_o win_v her_o neighbour_n make_v her_o careless_a both_o of_o the_o water_n and_o of_o her_o pail_n also_o and_o forgetful_a of_o the_o work_n she_o have_v to_o do_v at_o home_n 2._o she_o leave_v it_o for_o haste_n because_o if_o she_o shall_v have_v take_v it_o with_o she_o and_o carry_v it_o home_o she_o can_v not_o have_v go_v with_o that_o speed_n to_o fetch_v her_o neighbour_n as_o she_o think_v it_o be_v needful_a she_o shall_v do_v 3._o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o evangelist_n say_v when_o she_o come_v into_o the_o city_n she_o say_v to_o these_o man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o as_o the_o best_a translator_n read_v it_o to_o the_o man_n of_o that_o place_n that_o be_v the_o neighbour_n among_o who_o she_o live_v and_o all_o of_o they_o without_o difference_n she_o seek_v to_o draw_v they_o all_o unto_o christ._n have_v thus_o open_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o verse_n let_v we_o now_o observe_v two_o point_n in_o it_o for_o our_o instruction_n 1._o the_o zeal_n she_o have_v to_o run_v and_o fetch_v her_o neighbour_n 2._o the_o leave_v of_o her_o pail_n behind_o she_o and_o first_o in_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v here_o observe_v that_o this_o woman_n so_o soon_o as_o she_o know_v and_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v so_o zealous_a to_o draw_v her_o neighbour_n to_o he_o that_o for_o their_o sake_n she_o be_v content_a to_o leave_v christ_n though_o no_o doubt_n she_o desire_v much_o to_o continue_v with_o he_o and_o to_o deprive_v herself_o of_o the_o comfort_n and_o benefit_n she_o may_v have_v find_v if_o she_o have_v tarry_v long_o with_o he_o 2._o and_o make_v such_o haste_n to_o fetch_v they_o for_o fear_n he_o shall_v be_v go_v before_o she_o can_v bring_v they_o 3._o and_o call_v they_o all_o she_o say_v to_o the_o man_n one_o as_o well_o as_o another_o without_o special_a respect_n to_o any_o with_o neglect_n of_o other_o 4._o and_o thus_o she_o do_v be_v but_o a_o woman_n a_o poor_a and_o simple_a woman_n we_o have_v this_o doctrine_n to_o learn_v that_o every_o one_o that_o true_o know_v christ_n and_o find_v comfort_n in_o he_o will_v be_v careful_a and_o ready_a to_o draw_v other_o 1._o to_o he_o 1._o when_o they_o have_v find_v this_o comfort_n they_o can_v choose_v but_o speak_v of_o it_o to_o other_o their_o heart_n will_v burst_v if_o they_o shall_v not_o speak_v of_o it_o god_n grace_n be_v like_a fire_n in_o their_o bone_n as_o jer._n 20._o 9_o they_o can_v hide_v it_o though_o christ_n have_v charge_v the_o two_o blind_a man_n he_o cure_v that_o they_o shall_v say_v nothing_o of_o it_o matth._n 9_o 30._o yet_o when_o they_o depart_v they_o can_v not_o for_o their_o life_n conceal_v it_o 2._o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n require_v of_o all_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o wealth_n of_o this_o world_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 19_o that_o every_o one_o will_v do_v that_o have_v receive_v the_o heavenly_a riches_n of_o god_n grace_n they_o will_v do_v good_a with_o it_o to_o other_o they_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o distribute_v and_o communicate_v it_o to_o other_o paul_n wish_v hearty_o that_o both_o agrippa_n and_o all_o that_o hear_v he_o be_v altogether_o such_o as_o he_o be_v except_v his_o bond_n act._n 26._o 29._o in_o this_o be_v grace_v not_o unlike_a to_o worldly_a wealth_n no_o usurer_n be_v forward_a so_o soon_o as_o money_n come_v in_o to_o put_v it_o out_o again_o than_o every_o true_a believer_n be_v to_o put_v out_o the_o grace_n that_o he_o have_v receive_v he_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o five_o talent_n go_v and_o trade_v with_o they_o matth._n 25._o 16._o see_v this_o in_o sundry_a example_n psal._n 51._o 13._o david_n say_v he_o will_v teach_v god_n way_n to_o other_o they_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n speak_v often_o one_o to_o another_o mal._n 3._o 16._o so_o soon_o as_o christ_n have_v find_v philip_n philip_n go_v and_o find_v out_o nathaniel_n john_n 1._o 45._o so_o soon_o as_o matthew_n be_v convert_v he_o gather_v together_o a_o great_a company_n of_o publican_n and_o other_o to_o meet_v at_o his_o house_n luke_n 5._o 29._o the_o reason_n why_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o be_v many_o 1._o they_o know_v reason_n the_o lord_n have_v straight_o command_v and_o bind_v they_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v content_v himself_o to_o know_v believe_v repent_v but_o seek_v also_o to_o cause_v other_o to_o do_v it_o ezek._n 18_o 32._o cause_o therefore_o one_o another_o to_o return_v and_o live_v you_o luke_n 22_o 32._o when_o thou_o be_v convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n 1._o pet._n 4._o 10._o l●…t_v every_o one_o as_o he_o have_v receive_v a_o gift_n minister_v the_o same_o one_o unto_o another_o as_o good_a disposer_n 2._o the_o love_n they_o bear_v to_o god_n provoke_v they_o to_o do_v all_o they_o can_v to_o enlarge_v his_o kingdom_n know_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n we_o persuade_v man_n 2._o cor._n 5._o 11._o verse_n 14._o and_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n constrain_v us._n 3._o the_o love_n they_o bear_v to_o their_o neighbour_n the_o first_o and_o chief_a work_n of_o faith_n be_v love_n faith_n work_v by_o love_n gal._n 5._o 6._o and_o there_o be_v no_o love_n in_o he_o to_o his_o neighbour_n that_o love_v not_o his_o soul_n thou_o shall_v not_o hate_v thy_o brother_n in_o thy_o heart_n thou_o shall_v in_o any_o wise_a rebuke_n thy_o neighbour_n and_o not_o suffer_v sin_n upon_o he_o levit._n 19_o 17._o count_v he_o not_o as_o a_o enemy_n but_o admonish_v he_o as_o a_o brother_n 2._o thess._n 3._o 15._o if_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o leper_n accuse_v they_o for_o not_o acquaint_v the_o city_n that_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v famish_v with_o the_o victual_n and_o spoil_v the_o assyrian_n have_v leave_v behind_o they_o 2._o king_n 7._o 9_o how_o much_o more_o will_v it_o do_v that_o in_o this_o case_n 4._o they_o know_v it_o be_v the_o best_a mean_n to_o increase_v the_o grace_n they_o have_v the_o more_o they_o draw_v to_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n the_o more_o will_v their_o own_o knowledge_n and_o faith_n increase_v in_o they_o i_o long_o to_o see_v you_o that_o i_o may_v impart_v unto_o you_o some_o spiritual_a gift_n that_o i_o may_v be_v comfort_v together_o with_o you_o rom._n 1._o 11_o 12._o as_o the_o cast_n forth_o of_o your_o seed_n bring_v it_o you_o back_o again_o with_o great_a increase_n 2_o cor._n 9_o 6._o because_o god_n know_v abraham_n will_v make_v good_a use_n of_o that_o he_o know_v for_o the_o instruction_n of_o his_o family_n therefore_o he_o will_v hide_v nothing_o from_o abraham_n gen._n 18._o 19_o 5._o they_o know_v no_o good_a work_n they_o can_v do_v will_v have_v the_o like_a recompense_n of_o reward_n as_o this_o the_o work_n of_o mercy_n man_n have_v do_v but_o to_o the_o body_n of_o other_o have_v oft_o turn_v away_o god_n plague_n from_o they_o that_o otherwise_o will_v have_v fall_v on_o they_o for_o their_o sin_n
believe_v and_o receive_v in_o religion_n upon_o the_o credit_n and_o authority_n of_o any_o man_n 1●…0_n b._n baptism_n it_o be_v both_o unprofitable_a and_o hurtful_a to_o the_o wicked_a 5._o the_o whole_a congregation_n shall_v continue_v together_o at_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o 120._o it_o shall_v be_v administer_v in_o the_o public_a assembly_n 12●…_n blessing_n the_o ecclesiastical_a blessing_n pronounce_v by_o the_o minister_n be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v ibid._n what_o behaviour_n be_v fit_a for_o the_o people_n to_o use_v then_o 126._o body_n care_n be_v to_o be_v have_v even_o of_o our_o body_n and_o of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o neighbour_n 256_o 257._o the_o sin_n of_o they_o that_o by_o disorder_n over_o throw_v their_o health_n 258._o god_n require_v bodily_a service_n of_o we_o as_o well_o as_o spiritual_a 189._o 190._o christ_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o flesh_n show_v his_o miraculous_a power_n most_o in_o cure_v the_o body_n of_o man_n 445._o brownist_n see_v church_n their_o sin_n be_v great_a in_o separate_v from_o our_o church_n 1●…7_n c._n call_v a_o man_n may_v be_v sound_o religious_a and_o yet_o follow_v diligent_o his_o worldly_a call_v 238._o caution_n for_o they_o that_o leave_v the_o work_n of_o their_o call_v to_o follow_v sermon_n on_o the_o week_n day_n 2●…0_n call_v how_o far_o it_o may_v be_v neglect_v ibid._n call_v to_o the_o ministry_n wherein_o the_o inward_a call_n do_v principal_o consist_v 261._o catechise_v it_o be_v a_o profitable_a and_o necessary_a duty_n of_o the_o minister_n 205._o censure_n of_o the_o church_n the_o neglect_n of_o they_o towards_o scandalous_a sinner_n be_v a_o great_a contempt_n do_v to_o god_n worship_n 132_o 133._o ceremony_n difference_n in_o judgement_n about_o ceremony_n shall_v not_o alienate_v the_o affection_n of_o brethren_n 301._o 303._o 30●…_n ceremonial_a law_n see_v worship_n it_o be_v a_o carnal_a worship_n 184_o 185._o it_o be_v abrogate_a at_o christ_n passion_n 188._o the_o ceremony_n be_v shadow_n and_o we_o have_v have_v in_o our_o worship_n the_o substance_n of_o that_o that_o be_v signify_v by_o they_o 186._o 188._o popery_n exceed_v judaism_n in_o ceremony_n and_o therein_o discover_v much_o hypocrisy_n 197_o 198_o certainty_n in_o religion_n the_o elect_a and_o such_o as_o have_v good_a heart_n may_v attain_v unto_o it_o 140_o 212._o 214._o mean_v whereby_o we_o may_v attain_v to_o it_o 140._o comfort_n for_o god_n people_n that_o complain_v they_o want_v it_o 215._o all_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o seek_v for_o it_o 138._o 141._o they_o that_o have_v historical_a faith_n be_v certain_o persuade_v of_o whatsoever_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o his_o word_n 332._o the_o faithful_a be_v certain_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o be_v god_n himself_o that_o speak_v to_o they_o in_o his_o word_n 349._o certainty_n of_o salvation_n all_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o in_o the_o same_o measure_n certain_a of_o their_o salvation_n 333._o they_o that_o have_v the_o great_a certainty_n be_v not_o without_o all_o doubt_n &_o distrust_n 333._o 348._o 349._o nor_o feel_v this_o certainty_n at_o all_o time_n 336._o they_o that_o have_v most_o assurance_n must_v yet_o live_v in_o fear_n 334._o yet_o may_v the_o faithful_a in_o this_o life_n be_v certain_a of_o their_o salvation_n 334._o 341._o all_o be_v bind_v to_o seek_v for_o this_o certainty_n 341._o 342._o the_o mean_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v obtain_v 343_o the_o note_n whereby_o true_a assurance_n may_v be_v discern_v from_o that_o which_o be_v counterfeit_a 345_o comfort_n to_o the_o faithful_a that_o complain_v they_o want_v it_o 215_o 216._o cheerfulness_n require_v in_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o god_n service_n 263_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n in_o the_o faithful_a to_o be_v uncheerefull_a ●…0_n they_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o be_v cheerful_a and_o to_o serve_v god_n willing_o notwithstanding_o their_o infirmity_n 265_o 266._o 461._o chamber_v see_v dalliance_n child_n they_o shall_v seek_v to_o requite_v their_o parent_n love_n 391._o christ._n he_o be_v the_o great_a gift_n that_o ever_o god_n give_v to_o man_n 11._o how_o far_o he_o be_v abase_v for_o our_o sake_n 12._o why_o he_o be_v call_v christ_n and_o messiah_n 200._o 202._o the_o benefit_n and_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n belong_v not_o to_o all_o man_n 329._o yet_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o the_o benefit_n man_n receive_v by_o he_o shall_v be_v express_v in_o most_o general_a term_n 330._o poor_a sinner_n shall_v go_v bold_o to_o he_o in_o all_o their_o distress_n 450._o we_o shall_v not_o rest_v content_v with_o any_o blessing_n till_o we_o have_v christ_n 14._o note_n to_o know_v whether_o christ_n be_v we_o 15._o he_o do_v constant_o use_v prayer_n and_o other_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o why_o 163_o 164._o he_o be_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n to_o be_v offer_v unto_o all_o in_o a_o most_o general_a manner_n 330._o church_n papist_n give_v more_o credit_n to_o it_o then_o to_o the_o word_n 150._o 348._o we_o may_v not_o separate_v from_o a_o true_a church_n that_o enjoy_v the_o word_n and_o profess_v the_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n for_o the_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o it_o 165_o 166._o 384_o 385._o yet_o may_v we_o not_o communicate_v with_o a_o true_a church_n in_o any_o corruption_n 167._o every_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o join_v himself_o unto_o and_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 138_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a proper_a and_o certain_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 167._o how_o far_o forth_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n help_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o faith_n 348_o 349._o church-assembly_n they_o be_v a_o mean_n of_o our_o protection_n &_o safety_n from_o all_o danger_n 382._o the_o most_o public_a and_o solemn_a church-assembly_n be_v great_o to_o be_v esteem_v and_o frequent_v 129._o 153._o the_o sin_n of_o such_o as_o neglect_v they_o 128._o the_o great_a be_v hound_n to_o carry_v themselves_o reverent_o in_o they_o 117._o circumcision_n what_o it_o signify_v 180._o comfort_n to_o be_v find_v in_o christ_n in_o all_o our_o distress_n 450_o no_o worldly_a thing_n can_v yield_v comfort_n to_o the_o distress_a in_o mind_n 44_o 45._o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o regeneration_n be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o abundant_o and_o nothing_o else_o 46._o they_o that_o fear_v god_n have_v cause_n to_o be_v comfortable_a and_o upon_o what_o ground_n 90._o fine_a rule_n of_o comfort_n for_o such_o as_o be_v afflict_v in_o mind_n 346_o 347._o see_v prayer_n commonness_n of_o sin_n sin_n be_v never_o the_o less_o dangerous_a to_o a_o man_n be-because_a it_o be_v general_a 74._o 384._o how_o to_o carry_v ourselves_o in_o evil_a time_n when_o foul_a sin_n grow_v common_a &_o general_a 428_o 429_o it_o shall_v trouble_v we_o and_o cause_v we_o to_o look_v for_o some_o common_a calamity_n ibid._n company_n haunt_v bad_a company_n argue_v a_o bad_a heart_n 87_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v that_o live_v in_o evil_a time_n and_o place_n 429._o commonwealth_n the_o true_a cause_n why_o god_n spare_v our_o land_n though_o sin_n abound_v in_o it_o 429._o conference_n caution_n for_o they_o that_o confer_v and_o move_v question_n of_o religion_n 499_o 500_o confession_n the_o property_n require_v to_o true_a confession_n 85._o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o acknowledge_v all_o his_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n 102._o he_o that_o be_v true_o penitent_a will_v be_v ready_a to_o acknowledge_v his_o sin_n even_o unto_o man_n when_o he_o be_v charge_v with_o it_o 103._o it_o be_v profitable_a and_o necessary_a to_o confess_v some_o sin_n even_o unto_o man_n &_o dangerous_a to_o hide_v they_o 103_o 104._o conscience_n a_o good_a conscience_n will_v breed_v unspeakable_a peace_n and_o joy_n 437._o 438._o and_o assurance_n of_o a_o man_n salvation_n 343._o constancy_n constancy_n in_o obedience_n a_o good_a sign_n 481._o contentment_n grace_n breed_v contentment_n 3._o controversy_n every_o christian_a be_v not_o bind_v to_o study_v controversy_n nor_o to_o meddle_v with_o they_o 136._o yet_o some_o be_v 137._o conversion_n no_o man_n by_o nature_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n to_o help_v forward_o his_o own_o conversion_n 20._o it_o be_v a_o miraculous_a work_n of_o god_n 29._o they_o that_o be_v true_o religious_a will_v be_v careful_a to_o w●…nne_v other_o to_o god_n 224._o 235._o who_o be_v most_o charge_v and_o have_v most_o opportunity_n to_o do_v good_a this_o way_n 236._o note_v of_o a_o true_a convert_v 239._o true_a convert_v show_v great_a respect_n &_o reverence_n unto_o their_o minister_n 215._o conversion_n of_o man_n depend_v on_o god_n free_a grace_n 250._o four_o thing_n require_v in_o they_o that_o will_v win_v other_o to_o god_n 236._o private_a christian_n
and_o new_a function_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n 378._o we_o need_v none_o now_o 378._o popish_a miracle_n be_v false_a and_o counterfeit_a 379._o they_o be_v not_o do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n 449_o christ_n show_v his_o power_n most_o in_o cure_v the_o body_n of_o man_n 445._o 447._o six_o point_n observe_v in_o these_o miraculous_a cure_n 446._o difference_n between_o christ_n miracle_n and_o those_o of_o the_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n 447_o 448_o multitude_n fault_n that_o the_o common_a sort_n be_v especial_o addict_v unto_o 2●…4_n it_o be_v no_o safe_a thing_n to_o do_v as_o the_o most_o do_v 427._o comfort_n for_o the_o godly_a that_o be_v scorn_v for_o their_o singularity_n because_o they_o will_v not_o do_v as_o the_o most_o do_v 430._o 431._o n._n name_n a_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o have_v care_n of_o his_o good_a name_n 86._o why_o hebrew_a name_n be_v use_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o why_o we_o give_v hebrew_n name_n to_o our_o child_n 202._o nature_n see_v how_o void_a of_o all_o goodness_n and_o full_a of_o corruption_n every_o natural_a man_n be_v 26_o 28._o how_o much_o goodness_n may_v be_v in_o a_o natural_a man_n 174._o nazaret_n why_o our_o saviour_n do_v shun_v preach_v in_o nazaret_n above_o all_o other_o place_n 351_o 352._o o._n obedience_n no_o service_n please_v god_n but_o that_o that_o be_v do_v in_o obedience_n to_o his_o word_n 160._o this_o be_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o a_o upright_a heart_n 473_o seven_o note_n of_o sincere_a obedience_n 474._o regenerate_v able_a to_o obey_v 473._o difference_n betwixt_o obedience_n of_o regenerate_a and_o other_o ibid._n other_o salvation_n to_o be_v seek_v 246._o obstinacy_n see_v hardness_n of_o heart_n this_o great_o aggravate_v sin_n 422._o most_o man_n that_o live_v in_o the_o church_n sin_n obstinate_o 424._o four_o sign_n of_o a_o heart_n that_o be_v not_o harden_v nor_o obstinate_a in_o sin_n 423._o the_o fearful_a state_n of_o the_o obstinate_a 423._o p._n paint_v paint_v of_o the_o face_n be_v unlawful_a 87._o papist_n they_o be_v like_a to_o the_o samaritan_n in_o many_o thing_n 36_o 37._o they_o be_v idolater_n &_o worship_v the_o devil_n 163_o parent_n great_a be_v their_o affection_n to_o their_o child_n 391._o this_o shall_v confirm_v we_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o god_n love_n to_o his_o child_n 392._o they_o must_v take_v heed_n of_o over_o love_v their_o child_n and_o how_o we_o may_v best_o do_v they_o good_a 392._o what_o respect_n be_v to_o be_v have_v to_o the_o example_n of_o our_o parent_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n 143._o the_o hope_n and_o comfort_n christian_a parent_n may_v have_v concern_v their_o child_n 180._o their_o sin_n will_v bring_v god_n curse_n upon_o their_o child_n and_o what_o sin_n chief_o 393._o what_o a_o kind_n of_o service_n and_o solemnity_n it_o be_v 380._o patience_n the_o faithful_a have_v be_v very_o patient_a in_o affliction_n and_o show_v it_o four_o way_n 398._o the_o mean_n to_o breed_v it_o in_o we_o 398._o 399._o peace_n of_o conscience_n it_o be_v a_o fruit_n of_o true_a faith_n 336._o there_o be_v a_o false_a peace_n see_v presumption_n every_o affliction_n shall_v drive_v we_o to_o make_v peace_n with_o god_n and_o that_o three_o way_n 404._o peace-offering_n what_o they_o signify_v 187._o people_n see_v hearer_n persecution_n none_o can_v be_v save_v that_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o suffer_v and_o even_o to_o die_v for_o the_o truth_n 139._o to_o deride_v a_o minister_n be_v to_o persecute_v he_o 28●…_n perseverance_n the_o regenerate_a shall_v persevere_v and_o be_v careful_a so_o to_o do_v 481._o he_o that_o be_v true_o regenerate_v shall_v never_o fall_v fi_fw-la nal_o nor_o total_o yea_o he_o may_v be_v in_o this_o life_n certain_a of_o it_o 339_o 341._o our_o chief_a care_n must_v be_v to_o be_v best_a at_o our_o end_n 274_o 275._o physic_n they_o sin_v great_o that_o despise_v or_o neglect_v it_o 256_o 257._o pilgrimage_n reason_n against_o it_o 156._o povertie_n the_o poor_a that_o be_v godly_a have_v no_o cause_n to_o murmur_v or_o distrust_n god_n 33._o the_o frequent_v of_o religious_a exercise_n with_o a_o honest_a heart_n will_v beggar_v no_o man_n 244._o prayer_n help_v to_o keep_v the_o heart_n from_o wander_v in_o it_o 198._o every_o man_n must_v ask_v and_o cry_v for_o grace_n yea_o all_o who_o god_n mean_v to_o save_v shall_v do_v it_o 5_o objection_n against_o the_o necessity_n of_o prayer_n an_o swer_v 5_o 6._o all_o that_o can_v unfeigned_o seek_v to_o god_n for_o grace_n shall_v be_v sure_a to_o have_v it_o 8._o the_o weak_a christian_n shall_v not_o be_v discourage_v from_o prayer_n 9_o spiritual_a blessing_n rather_o to_o be_v pray_v for_o then_o temporal_a 9_o faith_n breed_v boldness_n in_o prayer_n 336_o 337._o god_n seem_v oft_o to_o neglect_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o people_n and_o that_o four_o way_n 407._o comfort_n for_o god_n people_n in_o this_o case_n 408_o 409_o labour_n to_o pray_v so_o as_o thou_o may_v speed_v 411._o christ_n himself_o use_v much_o to_o pray_v 203._o god_n delight_v great_o in_o the_o prayer_n of_o his_o people_n 193._o affliction_n drive_v the_o faithful_a to_o it_o 3●…6_n promise_n upon_o which_o we_o shall_v ground_v our_o faith_n in_o prayer_n 407._o three_o reason_n why_o god_n seem_v oft_o to_o neglect_v and_o reject_v the_o prayer_n of_o his_o people_n 408._o sign_n whereby_o we_o may_v know_v god_n accept_v our_o prayer_n though_o he_o grant_v not_o our_o suit_n 410_o 411._o we_o shall_v inquire_v after_o the_o success_n of_o our_o prayer_n 411_o 412._o property_n requisite_a in_o the_o prayer_n that_o will_v speed_v well_o 412._o poor_a sinner_n shall_v go_v bold_o to_o christ_n for_o help_v in_o all_o their_o distress_n 450._o preach_v see_v minisry_n a_o man_n may_v try_v his_o estate_n by_o the_o judgement_n he_o have_v to_o discern_v of_o sound_a teach_n 113_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o keep_v lecture_n &_o to_o frequent_v they_o even_o on_o the_o week_n day_n 243._o some_o be_v bind_v to_o go_v to_o sermon_n even_o on_o the_o week_n day_n 242._o even_o they_o that_o can_v shall_v yet_o desire_v to_o do_v it_o 243._o how_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o best_a preacher_n and_o preach_a 291._o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o 278_o 279_o 280._o preparation_n we_o can_v do_v no_o duty_n of_o god_n service_n well_o without_o it_o 487._o it_o be_v a_o great_a and_o necessary_a help_n for_o our_o profit_v by_o the_o word_n 487._o this_o preparation_n consist_v in_o six_o point_n 489._o think_v of_o the_o evil_a day_n &_o prepare_v for_o it_o 488_o presumption_n lewd_a man_n have_v no_o cause_n to_o hope_n they_o shall_v repent_v and_o find_v mercy_n 82_o 83._o they_o can_v have_v no_o sound_a comfort_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n mercy_n 99_o 452._o they_o be_v confident_a of_o their_o salvation_n and_o the_o note_n whereby_o true_a faith_n may_v be_v discern_v from_o this_o presumption_n 345._o pride_n no_o sin_n make_v we_o more_o odious_a to_o god_n 394._o the_o great_a must_v beware_v they_o be_v not_o proud_a either_o against_o god_n or_o man_n 388._o all_o man_n be_v strange_o prone_a to_o this_o soul_n sin_n 295._o affliction_n be_v a_o singular_a mean_a to_o abate_v it_o 395_o profaneness_n the_o sin_n of_o such_o as_o carry_v themselves_o profane_o in_o god_n public_a worship_n 134_o 135._o profession_n we_o shall_v all_o be_v willing_a and_o ready_a to_o make_v profession_n of_o our_o faith_n 349_o 350._o professor_n poor_a man_n young_a man_n such_o as_o have_v be_v former_o scandalous_a and_o woman_n have_v be_v usual_o most_o forward_o in_o religion_n 222._o this_o have_v be_v ever_o a_o great_a scandal_n to_o the_o word_n and_o why_o 224._o preseruative_n against_o this_o scandal_n 225._o professor_n shall_v strive_v to_o remove_v this_o scandal_n and_o how_o they_o may_v do_v it_o 226._o providence_n god_n by_o his_o providence_n govern_v all_o thing_n &_o order_v they_o for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o elect_n 217._o the_o knowledge_n of_o this_o be_v useful_a many_o way_n 219._o psalm_n it_o be_v fit_a they_o shall_v be_v sing_v in_o the_o congregation_n 121_o 122._o how_o we_o shall_v behave_v ourselves_o in_o sing_v they_o 126._o public_a worship_n see_v church-assembly_n it_o be_v necessary_a all_o shall_v be_v present_a at_o every_o part_n of_o it_o 121._o 128._o 129._o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o any_o private_a 129_o 130._o 153._o all_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o beginning_n and_o stay_n till_o the_o end_n of_o it_o 120._o 131_o 132._o rule_n for_o reverence_n in_o it_o see_v reverence_n all_o may_v profit_v by_o every_o part_n of_o it_o and_o every_o part_n of_o it_o have_v good_a warrant_n in_o the_o word_n 121._o 122._o the_o whole_a congregation_n
general_o have_v a_o reverend_a opinion_n of_o such_o man_n this_o reason_n be_v give_v why_o the_o pharisee_n dare_v say_v nothing_o against_o john_n mat._n 21._o 26._o for_o all_o hold_v john_n as_o a_o prophet_n herod_n himself_o think_v reverent_o of_o he_o mar._n 6._o 20._o 2._o to_o secure_v their_o own_o heart_n in_o their_o error_n and_o sin_n the_o find_n of_o this_o little_a goodness_n in_o themselves_o that_o they_o hate_v not_o all_o good_a man_n but_o can_v think_v and_o speak_v reverent_o of_o they_o do_v strange_o quiet_a the_o conscience_n of_o hypocrite_n for_o a_o time_n as_o that_o little_a goodness_n he_o find_v in_o himself_o do_v that_o pharisee_n luke_n 18._o 11._o the_o use_v of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v three_o 1._o to_o discover_v unto_o we_o the_o weak_a 1_o foundation_n of_o the_o popish_a faith_n and_o religion_n which_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o be_v large_a in_o have_v i_o not_o two_o reason_n to_o move_v i_o to_o it_o 1._o that_o though_o i_o see_v no_o cause_n to_o doubt_v that_o any_o of_o you_o shall_v be_v incline_v that_o way_n yet_o partly_o the_o great_a increase_n of_o papist_n of_o late_a and_o partly_o their_o strange_a boldness_n and_o confidence_n in_o their_o religion_n and_o readiness_n to_o maintain_v and_o broach_v their_o opinion_n in_o every_o company_n may_v cause_v you_o sometime_o to_o stagger_v and_o think_v they_o have_v some_o truth_n on_o their_o side_n if_o you_o be_v not_o the_o better_a ground_a and_o confirm_v against_o they_o 2._o my_o text_n here_o give_v i_o direct_a occasion_n to_o do_v it_o yea_o more_o direct_a than_o any_o other_o that_o i_o can_v think_v of_o in_o all_o the_o scripture_n consider_v therefore_o that_o as_o the_o papist_n do_v resemble_v the_o samaritan_n in_o many_o other_o thing_n so_o in_o this_o point_n especial_o that_o be_v describe_v in_o this_o text_n namely_o in_o advance_v the_o credit_n of_o good_a and_o holy_a man_n to_o the_o discredit_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n the_o papist_n be_v right_a samaritan_n and_o do_v resemble_v they_o in_o many_o thing_n 1._o the_o samaritan_n in_o many_o point_n of_o religion_n agree_v with_o the_o people_n of_o god_n for_o he_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n ezra_n 4._o 2._o 2._o king_n 17._o ●…8_n he_o acknowledge_v the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n he_o use_v circumcision_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n 2._o king_n 17._o 32._o he_o look_v for_o the_o messiah_n that_o be_v to_o come_v john_n 4._o 25._o so_o do_v the_o papist_n agree_v with_o we_o in_o many_o point_n of_o religion_n 2._o the_o samaritan_n corrupt_v these_o part_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n with_o gross_a superstition_n and_o idolatry_n for_o he_o have_v many_o thing_n beside_o the_o lord_n that_o he_o give_v divine_a honour_n unto_o 1._o king_n 17._o 29._o every_o nation_n make_v god_n of_o their_o own_o and_o put_v they_o in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o high_a place_n which_o the_o samaritan_n have_v make_v every_o nation_n in_o the_o city_n where_o they_o dwell_v he_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n in_o image_n these_o nation_n fear_v the_o lord_n and_o serve_v their_o grave_a image_n say_v the_o text_n 2._o king_n 17._o 41._o and_o in_o that_o respect_n though_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v of_o they_o 2._o king_n 17._o 33._o they_o fear_v the_o lord_n because_o they_o retain_v many_o part_n of_o god_n true_a worship_n yet_o in_o the_o very_a next_o verse_n he_o say_v they_o do_v not_o fear_n god_n they_o do_v not_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n because_o they_o serve_v he_o not_o according_a to_o his_o word_n and_o our_o saviour_n deny_v joh._n 4._o 22._o that_o there_o c●…uld_v be_v any_o salvation_n have_v in_o their_o religion_n in_o this_o point_n also_o the_o papist_n be_v like_o the_o samaritan_n he_o have_v many_o petty_a god_n that_o he_o give_v divine_a honour_n unto_o he_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n by_o image_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n we_o may_v as_o true_o say_v of_o he_o as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o samaritan_n he_o worship_v not_o the_o true_a god_n at_o all_o because_o he_o worship_v he_o not_o according_a to_o his_o word_n how_o then_o can_v salvation_n be_v find_v in_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o papist_n 3._o the_o samaritan_n be_v ever_o the_o chief_a practiser_n against_o the_o re-edify_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a city_n see_v some_o of_o their_o practice_n they_o weaken_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o people_n of_o judah_n and_o trouble_v they_o in_o building_n and_o hire_v counselor_n against_o they_o to_o frustrate_v their_o purpose_n all_o the_o day_n of_o cyrus_n as_o we_o read_v ezra_n 4._o 4._o 5._o and_o neh._n 6._o 12._o 14._o they_o make_v some_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o prophetess_n their_o instrument_n to_o hinder_v the_o work_n so_o have_v the_o papist_n ever_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o the_o mean_n whereby_o the_o growth_n of_o religion_n have_v be_v hinder_v among_o we_o the_o strange_a slander_n whereby_o many_o of_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n have_v be_v discredit_v both_o with_o the_o magistrate_n and_o with_o the_o people_n have_v come_v from_o the_o papist_n the_o domestical_a dissension_n and_o jar_n we_o have_v have_v among_o ourselves_o have_v come_v from_o the_o papist_n also_o but_o in_o nothing_o have_v he_o better_o resemble_v the_o samaritan_n then_o in_o this_o case_n that_o be_v here_o describe_v in_o this_o text_n namely_o in_o pretend_v great_a love_n and_o respect_n to_o the_o saint_n depart_v and_o in_o advance_v their_o credit_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o discredit_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n the_o samaritan_n pretend_v great_a reverence_n to_o jacob_n they_o pretend_v for_o this_o well_o from_o which_o they_o fetch_v their_o water_n that_o jacob_n give_v it_o they_o the_o papist_n pretend_v for_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o their_o pope_n from_o whence_o in_o very_a deed_n all_o their_o religion_n be_v derive_v and_o upon_o which_o it_o be_v ground_v that_o peter_n give_v it_o he_o that_o peter_n use_v it_o himself_o and_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v his_o successor_n and_o for_o their_o whole_a religion_n they_o pretend_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n deliver_v it_o unto_o they_o and_o therefore_o let_v we_o bring_v never_o so_o good_a evidence_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n against_o they_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o put_v we_o off_o as_o the_o samaritan_n do_v here_o be_v you_o or_o the_o founder_n of_o your_o religion_n luther_n and_o calvin_n great_a then_o saint_n peter_n be_v you_o or_o they_o better_a or_o more_o likely_a to_o see_v the_o truth_n in_o religion_n than_o all_o the_o father_n who_o give_v we_o this_o religion_n and_o themselves_o profess_v it_o and_o all_o such_o as_o be_v teach_v by_o they_o we_o honour_v the_o father_n say_v they_o you_o reject_v and_o despise_v they_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v for_o we_o and_o against_o you_o and_o your_o new_a religion_n now_o for_o answer_v unto_o they_o we_o say_v that_o the_o very_a same_o error_n will_v be_v find_v in_o this_o plea_n of_o they_o as_o we_o have_v find_v in_o the_o argument_n of_o this_o samaritan-woman_n for_o 1._o as_o jacob_n give_v no_o such_o well_o to_o the_o samaritan_n so_o it_o be_v evident_a peter_n give_v no_o such_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o they_o pretend_v mark_v how_o we_o prove_v this_o 2._o he_o have_v no_o such_o power_n and_o authority_n himself_o as_o the_o pope_n exercise_n peter_n exercise_v no_o such_o temporal_a and_o civil_a jurisdiction_n nay_o he_o may_v not_o do_v it_o the_o king_n of_o the_o gentile_n say_v our_o saviour_n unto_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n luk._n 22._o 25_o 26._o exercise_v lordship_n over_o they_o and_o they_o that_o exercise_n authority_n upon_o they_o be_v call_v benefactor_n but_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o peter_n never_o take_v upon_o he_o nor_o think_v he_o may_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o depose_v prince_n that_o shall_v abuse_v their_o authority_n against_o the_o true_a church_n and_o religion_n or_o to_o absolve_v subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n for_o he_o teach_v the_o contrary_a submit_v yourselves_o to_o every_o ordinance_n of_o man_n for_o the_o lord_n sake_n say_v he_o 1._o pet._n 2._o 13._o he_o have_v no_o such_o ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o the_o pope_n exercise_v for_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a to_o he_o paul_n profess_v so_o of_o himself_o in_o nothing_o be_o i_o behind_o the_o very_o chief_a apostle_n say_v he_o 2._o cor._n 12._o 11._o the_o same_o commission_n the_o same_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o same_o key_n
affirm_v nor_o be_v he_o offend_v with_o she_o for_o so_o odious_a a_o comparison_n neither_o do_v he_o in_o plain_a term_n affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v great_a than_o jacob_n because_o she_o be_v not_o yet_o fit_a to_o hear_v that_o that_o may_v have_v breed_v in_o she_o some_o suspicion_n of_o vainglory_n in_o he_o and_o make_v her_o unwilling_a to_o have_v any_o further_a speech_n with_o he_o but_o he_o prove_v the_o water_n that_o he_o have_v to_o give_v viz._n the_o grace_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o be_v far_o more_o excellent_a than_o the_o water_n of_o that_o well_o or_o then_o any_o water_n jacob_n have_v to_o give_v by_o a_o argument_n take_v from_o a_o far_o more_o excellent_a effect_n that_o this_o water_n have_v above_o any_o other_o water_n in_o the_o world_n beside_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v whereas_o one_o principal_a use_n that_o the_o water_n of_o this_o well_o in_o these_o hot_a country_n serve_v for_o be_v to_o quench_v the_o thirst_n jacob_n himself_o and_o his_o child_n etc._n etc._n do_v drink_v of_o it_o the_o water_n that_o i_o have_v to_o give_v be_v far_o more_o excellent_a for_o this_o use_n for_o this_o water_n will_v not_o so_o quench_v the_o thirst_n but_o a_o man_n that_o have_v drink_v of_o it_o shall_v within_o a_o while_n be_v as_o thirsty_a again_o as_o if_o he_o have_v never_o drink_v because_o the_o moisture_n and_o coolness_n thereof_o will_v be_v by_o the_o heat_n that_o be_v in_o he_o consume_v and_o dry_v up_o but_o he_o that_o have_v once_o drink_v of_o the_o water_n that_o i_o have_v to_o give_v shall_v be_v so_o satisfy_v with_o it_o as_o he_o shall_v never_o thirst_v again_o because_o the_o cool_a moisture_n that_o it_o yield_v can_v never_o be_v by_o any_o heat_n dry_v up_o but_o shall_v be_v in_o he_o as_o a_o fountain_n that_o will_v never_o leave_v spring_v till_o it_o have_v bring_v he_o to_o everlasting_a life_n so_o that_o in_o these_o word_n there_o be_v three_o principal_a point_n that_o offer_v themselves_o to_o our_o consideration_n 1._o that_o as_o the_o body_n so_o the_o soul_n of_o every_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o kind_n of_o thirst_n 2._o that_o no_o worldly_a thing_n can_v perfect_o and_o full_o quench_v this_o thirst_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v subject_a unto_o 3._o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n which_o our_o saviour_n call_v here_o the_o water_n of_o life_n be_v able_a full_o and_o perfect_o to_o quench_v the_o thirst_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v subject_a unto_o of_o these_o three_o point_n we_o will_v consider_v in_o that_o order_n that_o i_o have_v propound_v they_o in_o and_o first_o from_o this_o that_o our_o saviour_n make_v this_o a_o principal_a use_n that_o the_o water_n of_o life_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n serve_v unto_o to_o quench_v the_o thirst_n we_o learn_v that_o as_o the_o body_n of_o man_n through_o the_o heat_n that_o be_v in_o it_o partly_o natural_a partly_o accidental_a be_v subject_a unto_o thirst_n which_o if_o it_o be_v extreme_a be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o 1._o painful_a and_o intolerable_a passion_n that_o it_o endure_v in_o this_o life_n so_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o every_o man_n through_o the_o heat_n that_o it_o feel_v when_o it_o shall_v apprehend_v the_o anger_n of_o god_n due_a to_o he_o for_o sin_n subject_a unto_o thirst_n that_o be_v to_o such_o a_o desire_n of_o comfort_n against_o god_n wrath_n as_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n less_o but_o much_o more_o painful_a than_o the_o thirst_n of_o the_o body_n be_v for_o the_o thirst_n that_o the_o body_n be_v subject_a unto_o how_o intolerable_a it_o be_v when_o it_o grow_v to_o extremity_n though_o i_o need_v allege_v no_o proof_n but_o common_a experience_n which_o have_v find_v it_o to_o be_v more_o violent_a and_o intolerable_a than_o hunger_n be_v we_o may_v see_v it_o in_o two_o example_n the_o one_o of_o samson_n who_o though_o he_o be_v so_o strong_a and_o valiant_a that_o he_o can_v alone_o with_o the_o jaw_n of_o a_o ass_n slay_v a_o thousand_o philistines_n judg._n 15._o 15._o yet_o can_v he_o not_o vanquish_v nor_o endure_v this_o passion_n but_o be_v afraid_a he_o shall_v have_v die_v of_o thirst_n and_o cry_v earnest_o to_o god_n for_o help_v against_o it_o judg._n 15._o 18._o and_o our_o bless_a saviour_n that_o be_v never_o hear_v to_o complain_v of_o any_o other_o bodily_a torment_n that_o he_o do_v endure_v he_o give_v his_o back_n to_o the_o s●…iters_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v esa._n 50._o 6._o and_o his_o cheek_n to_o they_o that_o pluck_v off_o the_o hair_n he_o hide_v not_o his_o face_n from_o shame_n and_o spit_v he_o be_v oppress_v and_o he_o be_v afflict_v esa._n 53._o 7._o yet_o he_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n he_o be_v bring_v as_o a_o lamb_n to_o the_o slaughter_n and_o as_o a_o sheep_n before_o her_o shearer_n be_v dumb_a so_o he_o open_v not_o his_o mouth_n yet_o feel_v the_o extremity_n of_o this_o passion_n immediate_o before_o his_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n he_o cry_v out_o and_o that_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o compare_v mat._n 27._o 48._o with_o john_n 19_o 28._o i_o be_o a_o thirst_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n even_o the_o soul_n of_o every_o man_n first_o or_o last_o shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o thirst_n that_o be_v to_o such_o a_o desire_n of_o comfort_n against_o god_n wrath_n as_o be_v painful_a and_o intolerable_a be_v most_o evident_a see_v the_o proof_n of_o it_o in_o three_o condition_n and_o estate_n of_o man_n 1._o all_o god_n elect_v those_o poor_a and_o brokenhearted_a one_o that_o christ_n be_v send_v to_o be_v a_o saviour_n unto_o be_v say_v to_o have_v have_v this_o thirst_n in_o they_o before_o they_o can_v have_v any_o benefit_n by_o he_o david_n soul_n pant_v after_o god_n as_o the_o chase_a hart_n do_v after_o the_o water_n brook_v psal._n 42._o 1_o 〈◊〉_d his_o soul_n thirst_v for_o god_n and_o every_o one_o that_o thirst_v and_o none_o but_o he_o be_v invite_v esa._n 55_o 1._o to_o partake_v of_o all_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o he_o only_o have_v a_o promise_n to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o righteousness_n to_o be_v comfortable_o assure_v of_o his_o righteousness_n before_o god_n which_o consist_v in_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n &_o the_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n unto_o he_o that_o do_v hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o it_o mat._n 5._o 6_o 2._o such_o of_o the_o wicked_a as_o have_v be_v most_o profane_a &_o desperate_a derider_n and_o contemner_n of_o all_o piety_n and_o religion_n have_v oft_o even_o in_o this_o life_n have_v such_o a_o sore_a and_o intolerable_a thirst_n upon_o they_o that_o have_v they_o have_v all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n they_o will_v have_v give_v they_o for_o a_o little_a comfort_n against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n see_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o amos_n 8._o 11._o the_o lord_n speak_v of_o wicked_a man_n that_o shall_v wander_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o north_n to_o the_o east_n and_o shall_v run_v to_o and_o froto_fw-mi seek_v some_o comfort_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o shall_v not_o find_v it_o in_o that_o day_n say_v he_o shall_v the_o fair_a virgin_n and_o the_o young_a man_n who_o for_o the_o most_o part_n sin_n with_o a_o high_a hand_n in_o open_a contempt_n of_o piety_n perish_v for_o thirst_n even_o such_o as_o have_v most_o harden_v their_o heart_n against_o god_n fear_n the_o lord_n be_v able_a to_o bring_v to_o this_o thirst_n the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v this_o and_o his_o hand_n have_v fulfil_v it_o upon_o many_o a_o one_o 3._o such_o of_o the_o wicked_a as_o never_o feel_v any_o thirst_n in_o this_o life_n but_o live_v and_o die_v like_o senseless_a beast_n as_o many_o thousand_o doubtless_o do_v shall_v be_v sure_a to_o feel_v it_o in_o so_o much_o the_o great_a extremity_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v see_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o in_o luke_n 16._o 24._o the_o rich_a man_n who_o life_n be_v full_a of_o pleasure_n and_o who_o be_v all_o that_o while_o never_o trouble_v with_o this_o thirst_n in_o hell_n be_v so_o torment_v with_o it_o that_o he_o cry_v for_o lazarus_n the_o man_n against_o who_o he_o have_v show_v most_o cruelty_n to_o dip_v the_o tip_n of_o his_o finger_n in_o water_n and_o cool_v his_o tongue_n the_o reason_n of_o this_o if_o we_o will_v inquire_v into_o it_o we_o shall_v find_v to_o be_v this_o that_o as_o the_o extremity_n of_o bodily_a thirst_n grow_v from_o some_o distemper_n of_o heat_n so_o be_v reason_n it_o also_o with_o this_o thirst_n of_o the_o soul_n 1._o the_o sense_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o god_n anger_n
conscience_n 3._o or_o if_o ever_o they_o have_v this_o thirst_n and_o have_v now_o quench_v it_o with_o worldly_a comfort_n they_o shall_v sure_o thirst_v again_o and_o that_o in_o a_o more_o vehement_a and_o intolerable_a manner_n then_o ever_o they_o do_v before_o see_v this_o judgement_n threaten_v against_o they_o that_o make_v up_o the_o breach_n that_o god_n have_v make_v in_o their_o conscience_n with_o untempered_a mortar_n ezech._n 13._o 13._o therefore_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n god_n i_o will_v even_o rend_v it_o the_o wall_n that_o be_v thus_o daub_v with_o untempered_a mortar_n with_o a_o stormy_a wind_n in_o my_o fury_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o overflow_a shower_n in_o my_o anger_n and_o great_a hailstone_n in_o my_o fury_n to_o consume_v it_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v these_o 1._o 1._o if_o there_o be_v never_o so_o good_a su●…iciency_n in_o worldly_a comfort_n yet_o can_v a_o man_n be_v sure_a to_o have_v they_o when_o he_o shall_v stand_v most_o in_o need_n of_o they_o for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o the_o thirst_n of_o his_o soul_n for_o the_o lord_n deal_v oft_o with_o man_n in_o this_o case_n as_o he_o deal_v with_o jacob_n gen._n 32._o 24._o he_o wrestle_v with_o they_o and_o smite_v they_o in_o the_o night_n and_o when_o they_o be_v alone_o when_o neither_o their_o companion_n nor_o other_o mean_n of_o worldly_a comfort_n be_v at_o hand_n 2._o say_v a_o man_n enjoy_v they_o in_o great_a abundance_n yet_o in_o that_o case_n a_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o relish_v they_o or_o feel_v any_o comfort_n in_o they_o see_v a_o experiment_n of_o 2._o this_o when_o god_n have_v awaken_v the_o conscience_n of_o belshazzar_n and_o summon_v he_o to_o judgement_n and_o thereby_o smite_v his_o heart_n with_o deadly_a terror_n dan._n 5._o 5._o 6._o neither_o the_o vine_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o exquisite_a dainty_n nor_o all_o the_o pleasant_a compahe_fw-la have_v at_o his_o great_a feast_n can_v yield_v he_o any_o comfort_n he_o can_v relish_v no_o sweetness_n in_o they_o yea_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o a_o man_n have_v delight_v in_o they_o in_o former_a time_n by_o so_o much_o the_o more_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o distaste_v refuse_v and_o ab_fw-la horre_v they_o in_o this_o case_n the_o soul_n in_o that_o case_n be_v apt_a t●…_n refuse_v these_o comfort_n and_o to_o loathe_v they_o psal._n 77._o 2._o that_o which_o the_o prophet_n say_v of_o gold_n and_o silver_n ezek._n 7._o 19_o that_o in_o the_o day_n of_o extreme_a anguish_n man_n can_v take_v no_o comfort_n in_o they_o but_o shall_v be_v willing_a to_o cast_v they_o into_o the_o street_n and_o put_v they_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n the_o same_o may_v likewise_o be_v say_v of_o all_o worldly_a comfort_n merry_a talk_n and_o music_n at_o that_o time_n will_v be_v but_o as_o the_o cast_n of_o vinegar_n upon_o nitre_n as_o solomon_n speak_v pro._n 25._o 20._o so_o that_o a_o man_n may_v fit_o compare_v all_o these_o comfort_n to_o that_o break_a staff_n or_o reed_n mention_v 2_o reg._n 18._o 21._o upon_o which_o if_o a_o man_n lean_a it_o will_v go_v into_o his_o hand_n and_o pierce_v it_o 3._o say_v a_o man_n in_o this_o case_n enjoy_v all_o worldly_a comfort_n and_o do_v also_o esteem_v as_o much_o of_o they_o then_o as_o ever_o he_o do_v yet_o be_v it_o not_o possible_a they_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o quench_v the_o thirst_n that_o be_v cause_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n anger_n for_o god_n only_o be_v able_a to_o cure_v the_o wound_n that_o he_o have_v make_v he_o make_v sore_a and_o bind_v up_o say_v eliphaz_n job_n 5._o 18._o he_o wound_v and_o his_o hand_n make_v whole_a so_o that_o that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o riches_n pro._n 11._o 4._o may_v be_v say_v of_o all_o other_o worldly_a comfort_n they_o avail_n not_o in_o the_o day_n of_o god_n wrath_n the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o to_o work_v despair_n or_o dismay_v any_o who_o heart_n desire_v be_v to_o please_v god_n for_o to_o their_o comfort_n i_o may_v say_v as_o ezra_n 10._o 2._o use_v there_o be_v hope_n in_o israel_n concern_v this_o zach._n 13._o 1._o there_o be_v a_o fountain_n open_v to_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o sin_n and_o for_o uncleanness_n but_o to_o exhort_v every_o man_n 1._o to_o make_v less_o account_n of_o all_o worldly_a comfort_n and_o to_o esteem_v better_o of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o we_o may_v take_v comfort_n in_o these_o thing_n 1_o tim._n 6._o 17._o they_o be_v give_v to_o we_o in_o abundance_n to_o enjoy_v but_o we_o must_v take_v heed_n of_o trust_v in_o they_o or_o make_v they_o our_o only_a comfort_n consider_v what_o the_o apostle_n write_v 1_o cor._n 7._o 29._o 31._o they_o that_o have_v wife_n shall_v be_v as_o though_o they_o have_v none_o and_o they_o that_o rejoice_v as_o though_o they_o rejoice_v not_o and_o they_o that_o bay_n as_o though_o they_o possess_v not_o and_o they_o that_o use_v this_o world_n as_o not_o over-using_a it_o for_o the_o fashion_n of_o this_o world_n pass_v away_o we_o shall_v use_v also_o the_o comfort_n of_o this_o life_n with_o so_o indifferent_a a_o mind_n that_o they_o be_v no_o clog_n unto_o we_o to_o hinder_v we_o in_o the_o way_n unto_o a_o better_a life_n oh_o the_o misery_n of_o they_o that_o have_v no_o comfort_n but_o in_o their_o wealth_n or_o in_o their_o company_n or_o in_o their_o pleasure_n to_o they_o we_o may_v say_v as_o psal._n 4._o how_o long_o will_v you_o love_v vanity_n and_o follow_v after_o lease_v jonah_n 2._o 8._o they_o that_o observe_v these_o lie_a vanity_n forsake_v their_o own_o mercy_n 2._o to_o get_v without_o delay_n assurance_n to_o our_o soul_n of_o our_o interest_n in_o christ_n from_o who_o only_o this_o water_n of_o life_n which_o quench_v the_o thirst_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v to_o be_v have_v according_a to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o psalmist_n psal._n 2._o 12._o kiss_v the_o son_n lest_o he_o be_v angry_a and_o you_o perish_v from_o the_o way_n when_o his_o wrath_n be_v kindle_v but_o a_o little_a bless_a be_v they_o that_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o lecture_n the_o ten_o april_n 4._o 1609._o john_n four_o xiiii_o it_o follow_v that_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o point_n which_o i_o tell_v you_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o this_o and_o the_o former_a verse_n namely_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n which_o our_o saviour_n here_o call_v the_o water_n of_o life_n be_v able_a full_o and_o perfect_o to_o quench_v this_o thirst_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o for_o our_o saviour_n here_o say_v that_o whosoever_o drink_v of_o the_o water_n that_o he_o will_v give_v he_o shall_v never_o thirst_v and_o give_v a_o reason_n why_o he_o can_v never_o be_v a_o thirst_n again_o the_o water_n that_o i_o shall_v give_v he_o shall_v be_v in_o he_o a_o well_o of_o water_n spring_v up_o into_o everlasting_a life_n now_o that_o we_o may_v build_v upon_o a_o sure_a foundation_n we_o must_v call_v to_o mind_n that_o which_o i_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o handle_n of_o the_o 10._o verse_n that_o by_o this_o water_n of_o life_n be_v mean_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n this_o be_v then_o prove_v evident_o by_o two_o place_n esa._n 44._o 3._o i_o will_v pour_v water_n upon_o the_o thirsty_a and_o flood_n upon_o the_o dry_a ground_n i_o will_v pour_v my_o spirit_n upon_o thy_o seed_n and_o my_o blessing_n upon_o thy_o bud_n and_o joh._n 7._o 38._o he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o out_o of_o his_o belly_n shall_v flow_v river_n of_o water_n of_o life_n verse_n 39_o this_o speak_v he_o of_o the_o spirit_n which_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v receive_v so_o that_o when_o our_o saviour_n say_v here_o whosoever_o drink_v of_o the_o water_n that_o i_o shall_v give_v he_o shall_v never_o thirst_v it_o be_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v thus_o in_o plain_a term_n whosoever_o shall_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o regeneration_n which_o i_o shall_v give_v he_o and_o which_o none_o can_v receive_v but_o by_o i_o and_o through_o my_o merit_n shall_v never_o be_v more_o a_o thirst_n that_o be_v he_o shall_v not_o only_o obtain_v sound_a and_o perfect_a peace_n in_o his_o conscience_n against_o the_o apprehension_n of_o god_n wrath_n due_a to_o his_o sin_n but_o this_o peace_n and_o comfort_n of_o his_o conscience_n shall_v never_o die_v nor_o decay_n in_o he_o he_o shall_v never_o fall_v into_o a_o deadly_a thirst_n again_o nor_o into_o that_o painful_a and_o intolerable_a desire_n of_o comfort_n against_o god_n wrath_n that_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o before_o for_o that_o seed_n of_o god_n and_o spirit_n
his_o disciple_n here_o verse_n 32._o so_o may_v a_o christian_a say_v to_o these_o i_o have_v joy_n that_o you_o know_v not_o of_o pro._n 14._o 10._o no_o stranger_n can_v meddle_v with_o or_o skill_n of_o our_o joy_n the_o man_n that_o true_o fear_v god_n have_v that_o joy_n that_o he_o will_v not_o give_v a_o dragm_n of_o it_o for_o a_o pound_n of_o thy_o joy_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o that_o speech_n of_o david_n psal._n 4._o 7._o thou_o have_v put_v gladness_n in_o my_o heart_n say_v he_o more_o than_o they_o have_v than_o worldling_n have_v in_o their_o time_n that_o their_o corn_n and_o their_o wine_n increase_v it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o godly_a have_v their_o dump_n sometime_o and_o fit_v of_o heaviness_n but_o 1._o though_o they_o do_v not_o for_o the_o present_a joy_n yet_o they_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o find_v comfort_n in_o the_o end_n psal._n 97._o 11._o light_n be_v sow_v for_o the_o righteous_a and_o gladness_n for_o the_o upright_o in_o heart_n 2._o when_o they_o bethink_v themselves_o well_o of_o their_o own_o estate_n and_o by_o due_a trial_n of_o themselves_o find_v that_o they_o have_v in_o themselves_o this_o well_o of_o water_n that_o christ_n here_o speak_v of_o that_o the_o seed_n of_o god_n abide_v in_o they_o then_o do_v they_o check_v themselves_o for_o be_v so_o uncomfortable_a as_o david_n do_v psal._n 42._o 11._o and_o find_v they_o have_v just_a cause_n not_o to_o be_v sad_a but_o to_o rejoice_v and_o to_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n that_o whereas_o wicked_a man_n the_o less_o they_o look_v into_o their_o own_o heart_n and_o think_v of_o their_o estate_n the_o merry_a they_o be_v it_o be_v quite_o contrary_a with_o the_o godly_a man_n gal._n 6._o 4._o let_v every_o man_n prove_v his_o own_o work_n and_o then_o he_o shall_v have_v rejoice_v in_o himself_o alone_o and_o not_o in_o another_o thus_o i_o have_v make_v this_o second_o point_n plain_a unto_o you_o let_v we_o now_o prove_v and_o confirm_v it_o in_o a_o word_n or_o two_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v call_v psal._n 45._o 7._o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n because_o it_o make_v a_o man_n to_o look_v cheerful_o therefore_o also_o it_o be_v say_v pro._n 29._o 6._o in_o the_o transgression_n of_o a_o evil_a man_n there_o be_v a_o snare_n but_o the_o righteous_a do_v sing_v and_o rejoice_v see_v a_o experiment_n of_o this_o in_o paul_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 12._o our_o rejoice_v be_v this_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n that_o in_o simplicity_n and_o godly_a pureness_n and_o not_o in_o fleshly_a wisdom_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o have_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o the_o world_n yea_o he_o say_v 1_o cor_fw-la 9_o 15._o he_o will_v rather_o die_v then_o loose_a this_o rejoice_v that_o he_o find_v in_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n the_o three_o and_o last_o point_n wherein_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n appear_v be_v this_o that_o even_o in_o the_o evil_a day_n when_o all_o other_o comfort_n will_v fail_v a_o man_n 〈◊〉_d when_o most_o token_n of_o god_n anger_n shall_v be_v upon_o a_o man_n and_o satan_n shall_v be_v busy_a with_o he_o and_o his_o own_o weak_a heart_n shall_v be_v most_o subject_a to_o fear_v and_o to_o that_o thirst_n we_o hear_v of_o the_o last_o day_n even_o in_o that_o day_n this_o water_n of_o life_n a_o upright_a heart_n and_o a_o godly_a life_n will_v yield_v unspeakable_a boldness_n and_o security_n peace_n and_o comfort_n to_o the_o conscience_n of_o a_o man_n and_o well_o fare_v that_o comfort_n that_o will_v stick_v by_o a_o man_n and_o show_v itself_o most_o when_o a_o man_n shall_v have_v most_o need_n of_o it_o solomon_n commend_v a_o true_a friend_n by_o this_o note_n a_o friend_n love_v at_o all_o time_n say_v he_o proverb_n 17._o 17._o it_o be_v much_o to_o the_o commendation_n of_o good_a work_n that_o that_o daniel_n say_v to_o nabuchadnezzar_n when_o he_o will_v direct_v he_o how_o to_o escape_v that_o temporal_a judgement_n and_o fearful_a plague_n that_o god_n have_v threaten_v he_o tell_v he_o this_o be_v the_o way_n daniel_n 4._o 24._o break_v off_o thy_o sin_n by_o righteousness_n and_o thy_o iniquity_n by_o show_v mercy_n to_o the_o poor_a if_o it_o may_v be_v a_o lengthen_v of_o thy_o tranquillity_n good_a work_n will_v prevent_v and_o keep_v off_o god_n judgement_n but_o good_a work_n will_v do_v much_o more_o than_o so_o they_o will_v free_v the_o conscience_n from_o fear_n in_o the_o evil_a day_n they_o will_v work_v peace_n and_o comfort_n in_o the_o heart_n in_o the_o day_n of_o anguish_n and_o tentation_n psalm_n 112._o 4._o unto_o the_o upright_o there_o arise_v light_n in_o darkness_n proverb_n 28._o 1._o the_o wicked_a flee_v when_o no_o man_n pursue_v but_o the_o righteous_a be_v bold_a as_o a_o lion_n such_o a_o one_o be_v like_o a_o house_n build_v upon_o a_o rock_n no_o wind_n nor_o flood_n can_v hurt_v he_o matthew_n 7._o 24_o 25._o therefore_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o spiritual_a armour_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v make_v able_a to_o stand_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n name_v righteousness_n for_o the_o breastplate_n ephesian_n 6._o 14._o see_v the_o experiment_n of_o this_o in_o job_n 6._o 10._o yet_o this_o comfort_n i_o have_v though_o i_o burn_v with_o sorrow_n and_o he_o spare_v i_o not_o that_o i_o have_v not_o deny_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a one_o and_o that_o make_v the_o apostle_n say_v james_n 2._o 13._o mercy_n rejoice_v against_o judgement_n the_o reason_n why_o the_o water_n of_o life_n have_v such_o virtue_n to_o quench_v reason_n the_o thirst_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v for_o that_o the_o spirit_n apply_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o conscience_n a_o godly_a life_n assure_v we_o that_o christ_n and_o his_o merit_n belong_v unto_o we_o indeed_o for_o to_o speak_v proper_o christ_n only_a be_v the_o refuge_n against_o this_o tempest_n and_o shadow_n against_o this_o heat_n as_o he_o be_v call_v isaiah_n 25._o 4._o and_o his_o blood_n be_v that_o drink_n that_o quench_v this_o thirst_n and_o satisfy_v the_o soul_n john_n 6._o 55._o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o and_o verse_n 35._o he_o that_o come_v to_o i_o shall_v not_o hunger_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o i_o shall_v not_o thirst_v it_o be_v not_o our_o own_o righteousness_n that_o can_v shade_v we_o from_o the_o heat_n of_o god_n wrath_n but_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n only_o therefore_o paul_n desire_v that_o he_o may_v be_v find_v in_o he_o not_o have_v his_o own_o righteousness_n phil._n 3._o 9_o and_o nehemiah_n 13._o 22._o spare_v i_o according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o thy_o mercy_n but_o forasmuch_o as_o christ_n righteousness_n be_v without_o we_o the_o spirit_n be_v that_o that_o apply_v it_o to_o we_o and_o unit_v we_o to_o he_o and_o a_o godly_a life_n be_v that_o that_o assure_v we_o that_o our_o faith_n be_v a_o true_a and_o live_a not_o a_o false_a and_o dead_a faith_n 1._o john_n 3._o 7._o he_o that_o do_v righteousness_n be_v righteous_a even_o as_o he_o be_v righteous_a therefore_o this_o also_o be_v say_v to_o quench_v the_o thirst_n in_o which_o respect_n good_a work_n be_v also_o call_v a_o foundation_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 19_o the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v first_o for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o all_o man_n 1_o in_o the_o question_n between_o we_o and_o the_o papist_n touch_v good_a work_n and_o for_o the_o convince_a they_o of_o slander_n you_o hear_v what_o we_o grant_v 1._o that_o good_a work_n be_v marvelous_o profitable_a godliness_n be_v profitable_a unto_o all_o thing_n say_v the_o apostle_n 1._o timothy_n 4._o 8._o 2._o that_o they_o be_v also_o so_o necessary_a that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v without_o they_o only_o we_o deny_v first_o that_o they_o can_v justify_v we_o before_o god_n second_o that_o they_o can_v merit_v heaven_n or_o a_o far_o mean_a reward_n than_o heaven_n be_v at_o god_n hand_n 2._o to_o admonish_v all_o man_n to_o seek_v grace_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n 1._o all_o man_n desire_v joy_n and_o esteem_v it_o the_o only_a felicity_n they_o abhor_v 2._o sadness_n and_o sorrow_n as_o the_o devil_n but_o be_v not_o deceive_v do_v what_o thou_o can_v hunt_v after_o these_o delight_n as_o greedy_o as_o thou_o can_v yet_o will_v god_n make_v thou_o one_o day_n know_v and_o feel_v what_o thou_o have_v do_v for_o all_o these_o thing_n god_n will_v bring_v thou_o unto_o judgement_n ecceles_n 11._o 9_o and_o then_o shall_v thy_o heart_n be_v make_v sad_a luke_n 6._o 25._o woe_n be_v to_o you_o that_o laugh_v now_o for_o you_o shall_v mourn_v and_o weep_v 2._o oh_o seek_v for_o sound_n and_o true_a
the_o thessalonian_n thessalonian_o 2_o thes._n 1._o 5._o that_o all_o the_o suffering_n he_o do_v endure_v be_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n that_o they_o may_v not_o miss_v of_o that_o 3_o when_o our_o care_n be_v to_o make_v use_n of_o all_o that_o we_o hear_v and_o learn_v for_o the_o edify_n of_o ourselves_o in_o faith_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n not_o to_o feed_v any_o humour_n of_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n or_o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o talk_v well_o but_o that_o we_o may_v practice_v that_o we_o hear_v desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n say_v the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d pet._n 2._o 2._o that_o you_o may_v grow_v thereby_o that_o be_v the_o only_a right_a use_n that_o shall_v be_v make_v of_o the_o word_n to_o be_v edify_v in_o our_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o 1_o tim._n 1._o 4._o thy_o word_n have_v i_o hide_v in_o my_o heart_n say_v david_n psal._n 119._o 11._o that_o i_o may_v not_o sin_v against_o thou_o in_o which_o respect_n also_o the_o whole_a truth_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o his_o word_n be_v call_v 1_o tim._n 6._o 3._o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v according_a unto_o godliness_n it_o tend_v whole_o unto_o this_o to_o make_v man_n godly_a and_o they_o that_o use_v it_o to_o any_o other_o end_n pervert_v it_o dangerous_o unto_o their_o own_o destruction_n 4_o when_o thou_o so_o receive_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o thou_o can_v resolve_v to_o suffer_v any_o thing_n rather_o than_o thou_o will_v renounce_v or_o fall_v from_o any_o part_n of_o god_n truth_n that_o thou_o know_v and_o be_v persuade_v of_o true_a it_o be_v 1._o a_o man_n may_v have_v a_o good_a heart_n and_o yet_o use_v wisdom_n in_o shun_v persecution_n and_o disgrace_n 2._o the_o lord_n in_o his_o goodness_n tender_v the_o weakness_n of_o some_o of_o his_o servant_n so_o far_o as_o that_o he_o never_o bring_v they_o to_o any_o trouble_n for_o his_o sake_n but_o every_o one_o that_o have_v a_o good_a heart_n resolve_v with_o himself_o and_o be_v willing_a to_o suffer_v any_o disgrace_n and_o loss_n for_o the_o truth_n sake_n if_o god_n shall_v see_v good_a to_o call_v he_o to_o it_o yea_o we_o must_v all_o be_v willing_a to_o contend_v earnest_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o faith_n jude_n 4._o and_o without_o this_o willingness_n to_o suffer_v none_o can_v be_v save_v if_o any_o man_n will_v come_v after_o i_o and_o enjoy_v heaven_n where_o i_o be_o to_o be_v say_v our_o saviour_n luke_n 9_o 23._o let_v he_o deny_v himself_o and_o take_v up_o his_o cross_n daily_o and_o follow_v i_o and_o luk._n 14._o 26_o 27._o whosoever_o do_v not_o bear_v his_o cross_n and_o come_v after_o i_o can_v be_v my_o disciple_n the_o thirteen_o lecture_n on_o may_v ii_o mdcix_o john_n four_o xvi_o xvii_o xviii_o jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o go_v call_v thy_o husband_n and_o come_v hither_o the_o woman_n answer_v and_o say_v i_o have_v no_o husband_n jesus_n say_v unto_o she_o thou_o have_v well_o say_v i_o have_v no_o husband_n for_o thou_o have_v have_v five_o husband_n and_o he_o who_o thou_o now_o have_v be_v not_o thy_o husband_n in_o that_o say_v thou_o true_o we_o hear_v the_o last_o day_n out_o of_o the_o former_a verse_n that_o this_o woman_n though_o now_o she_o begin_v to_o conceive_v better_a both_o of_o the_o person_n and_o speech_n of_o christ_n than_o she_o have_v do_v before_o and_o do_v not_o only_o give_v credit_n to_o that_o which_o christ_n have_v say_v touch_v the_o water_n of_o life_n but_o be_v also_o so_o affect_v with_o his_o speech_n as_o she_o do_v desire_v he_o to_o give_v she_o of_o that_o water_n yet_o do_v she_o not_o understand_v his_o meaning_n but_o think_v still_o that_o water_n of_o life_n he_o speak_v of_o have_v be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o material_a water_n and_o therefore_o desire_v it_o only_o in_o a_o carnal_a respect_n she_o have_v to_o her_o ease_n and_o profit_n two_o cause_n there_o be_v of_o this_o her_o blockishness_n first_o that_o she_o know_v christ_n no_o better_a but_o take_v he_o to_o be_v a_o ordinary_a man_n the_o other_o that_o she_o know_v herself_o and_o she_o own_o estate_n no_o better_o but_o live_v secure_o in_o know_a and_o heinous_a sin_n our_o saviour_n for_o all_o this_o give_v she_o not_o quite_o over_o because_o of_o her_o blockishness_n and_o uncapablenesse_n but_o now_o leave_v the_o speech_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n he_o begin_v to_o make_v himself_o and_o her_o own_o estate_n better_o know_v unto_o she_o to_o this_o purpose_n he_o discover_v to_o her_o the_o most_o secret_a thing_n that_o ever_o she_o do_v especial_o such_o as_o may_v stir_v up_o in_o she_o a_o thirst_n after_o the_o water_n of_o life_n for_o it_o appear_v by_o she_o own_o word_n to_o her_o neighbour_n verse_n 29_o 39_o that_o he_o have_v tell_v she_o many_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v unknown_a to_o all_o man_n but_o the_o evangelist_n mention_n this_o only_a of_o all_o the_o secret_n that_o he_o tell_v she_o because_o in_o this_o the_o infinite_a mercy_n of_o christ_n do_v most_o shine_v that_o have_v such_o respect_n unto_o and_o be_v so_o careful_a of_o the_o salvation_n of_o so_o vile_a a_o woman_n now_o he_o do_v not_o charge_v she_o with_o her_o sin_n in_o plain_a term_n nor_o deal_v rough_o with_o she_o he_o call_v she_o not_o whore_n nor_o tell_v she_o at_o the_o fi●…st_n that_o she_o live_v in_o filthy_a adultery_n for_o he_o know_v in_o his_o divine_a wisdom_n that_o this_o sharpness_n will_v not_o be_v needful_a but_o hurtful_a rather_o but_o first_o bid_v she_o go_v and_o call_v her_o husband_n and_o come_v again_o and_o though_o he_o know_v it_o well_o she_o have_v no_o husband_n yet_o do_v he_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o draw_v out_o so_o much_o from_o her_o own_o mouth_n which_o when_o she_o have_v confess_v then_o do_v he_o plain_o discover_v how_o privy_a he_o be_v to_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o her_o life_n and_o tell_v she_o for_o the_o further_o aggravate_v of_o her_o sin_n that_o though_o she_o have_v have_v five_o husband_n yet_o she_o keep_v one_o now_o that_o be_v not_o her_o husband_n so_o that_o these_o word_n afford_v four_o principal_a thing_n to_o our_o consideration_n 1._o that_o our_o saviour_n thirst_v after_o the_o salvation_n of_o this_o poor_a woman_n discover_v to_o she_o her_o sin_n and_o that_o nothing_o he_o have_v say_v before_o can_v work_v upon_o her_o conscience_n till_o he_o take_v this_o course_n with_o she_o 2._o that_o the_o sin_n he_o do_v discover_v unto_o she_o be_v a_o secret_a sin_n unknown_a to_o all_o man_n 3._o that_o of_o all_o the_o sin_n she_o be_v guilty_a of_o when_o he_o will_v touch_v and_o awaken_v her_o conscience_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o this_o sin_n of_o fornication_n and_o charge_v she_o with_o that_o 4._o that_o notwithstanding_o she_o live_v in_o so_o heinous_a a_o sin_n yet_o he_o reject_v she_o not_o nor_o deal_v rough_o with_o she_o but_o he_o deal_v most_o tender_o with_o she_o and_o show_v much_o care_n and_o desire_v of_o her_o salvation_n first_o then_o in_o that_o our_o saviour_n seek_v the_o salvation_n of_o this_o woman_n that_o he_o may_v make_v she_o more_o capable_a of_o that_o he_o have_v say_v concern_v the_o water_n of_o life_n and_o work_v in_o she_o a_o true_a desire_n of_o it_o tell_v she_o of_o the_o heinous_a sin_n she_o live_v in_o we_o learn_v that_o they_o that_o will_v win_v soul_n to_o god_n must_v plain_o and_o particular_o 1._o discover_v to_o man_n their_o sin_n before_o i_o confirm_v this_o doctrine_n two_o caution_n and_o rule_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v from_o this_o example_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o it_o 1._o a_o minister_n be_v not_o always_o bind_v in_o plain_a term_n imperious_o sharp_o and_o bitter_o to_o reprove_v the_o sin_n he_o know_v by_o his_o hearer_n but_o he_o be_v bind_v to_o take_v that_o course_n which_o he_o see_v to_o be_v most_o likely_a to_o prevail_v and_o do_v they_o good_a for_o our_o saviour_n here_o call_v not_o this_o woman_n whore_n nor_o at_o the_o first_o direct_o tell_v she_o of_o her_o sin_n that_o may_v haply_o have_v drive_v she_o from_o he_o but_o go_v about_o she_o and_o use_v a_o holy_a cra●…t_n and_o cunning_a with_o she_o so_o speak_v the_o apostle_n of_o himself_o 2._o cor._n 12._o 16._o for_o as_o much_o as_o i_o be_v crafty_a i_o take_v you_o with_o guile_n thus_o deal_v nathan_n with_o david_n 2._o sam._n 12._o 1._o 4._o he_o use_v a_o parable_n and_o long_a circumlocution_n to_o make_v way_n into_o his_o heart_n for_o his_o reproof_n he_o that_o win_v soul_n be_v wise_a say_v solomon_n proverbe_n 11._o 30._o and_o proverbe_n 15._o
2._o the_o tongue_n of_o the_o wise_a use_v knowledge_n aright_o to_o the_o application_n of_o the_o word_n a_o special_a wisdom_n be_v require_v 1._o corinth_n 12._o 8._o the_o pastors_n gift_n who_o work_n stand_v principal_o in_o application_n be_v call_v there_o the_o word_n or_o utterance_n of_o wisdom_n 2._o sin_n must_v so_o be_v reprove_v as_o that_o the_o credit_n and_o estimation_n of_o the_o person_n that_o sin_v may_v be_v preserve_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v private_a sin_n must_v not_o be_v make_v public_a our_o saviour_n therefore_o here_o when_o he_o discover_v to_o this_o woman_n her_o secret_a sin_n do_v it_o in_o secret_a between_o they_o two_o he_o will_v not_o have_v so_o much_o as_o any_o of_o his_o disciple_n by_o this_o our_o saviour_n give_v for_o a_o rule_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o that_o desire_v to_o win_v their_o brother_n mat._n 18._o 15._o go_v and_o tell_v he_o his_o fault_n between_o he_o and_o thou_o alone_o yet_o nevertheless_o this_o must_v be_v do_v by_o all_o that_o will_v win_v soul_n to_o god_n they_o must_v plain_o and_o particular_o discover_v to_o they_o their_o sin_n let_v they_o do_v it_o with_o as_o much_o wisdom_n as_o they_o can_v and_o with_o as_o much_o love_n as_o they_o can_v so_o they_o do_v it_o this_o must_v needs_o be_v do_v this_o be_v make_v a_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o minister_n when_o the_o apostle_n have_v deep_o charge_v timothy_n 2_o tim._n 4._o 12._o to_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o to_o be_v instant_a in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n he_o tell_v he_o how_o he_o shall_v perform_v that_o duty_n to_o do_v it_o well_o reprove_v say_v he_o yea_o rebuke_v exhort_v etc._n etc._n and_o the_o contrary_n note_v as_o the_o most_o proper_a mark_n of_o a_o false_a prophet_n lam._n 2._o 14._o thy_o prophet_n have_v look_v out_o vain_a and_o foolish_a thing_n for_o thou_o they_o have_v not_o discover_v thy_o iniquity_n yea_o this_o must_v be_v do_v 1._o particular_o and_o plain_o that_o the_o party_n may_v feel_v himself_o and_o his_o own_o sin_n touch_v as_o plain_o appear_v by_o the_o prophet_n nathan_n deal_v with_o david_n 2._o sam._n 12._o 12._o thou_o be_v the_o man_n yea_o 2._o if_o they_o be_v public_a and_o scandalous_a sin_n they_o must_v be_v reprove_v public_o 1._o tim._n 5._o 20._o 3._o it_o must_v be_v do_v effectual_o and_o zealous_o cry_v aloud_o say_v the_o lord_n esa_n 58._o 1_o 2._o lift_v up_o thy_o voice_n like_o a_o trumpet_n yea_o 4._o in_o some_o case_n with_o sharpness_n and_o bitterness_n also_o tit._n 1._o 13._o rebuke_v they_o sharp_o this_o sharpness_n christ_n himself_o use_v sometime_o mat._n 23._o 33._o you_o serpent_n you_o generation_n of_o viper_n how_o can_v you_o escape_v the_o damnation_n of_o hell_n the_o reason_n of_o this_o be_v the_o benefit_n that_o come_v to_o god_n people_n by_o have_v their_o sin_n thus_o plain_o and_o effectual_o discover_v unto_o they_o reason_n 1._o till_o man_n have_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o knowledge_n of_o sin_n they_o can_v never_o understand_v right_o or_o clear_o believe_v any_o thing_n in_o religion_n with_o any_o certainty_n or_o assurance_n this_o we_o have_v a_o experiment_n of_o in_o this_o poor_a woman_n how_o blockish_a be_v she_o till_o christ_n reveal_v unto_o she_o her_o sin_n and_o one_o chief_a reason_n why_o she_o be_v so_o unable_a to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v because_o she_o live_v secure_o in_o a_o grievous_a sin_n as_o the_o earth_n can_v receive_v the_o seed_n till_o it_o be_v plough_v up_o so_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n can_v receive_v the_o word_n till_o the_o lord_n plough_n have_v be_v in_o it_o this_o comparison_n the_o holy_a ghost_n use_v jer._n 44._o a_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n in_o religion_n i_o grant_v be_v in_o many_o that_o live_v secure_o in_o grievous_a sin_n and_o never_o have_v their_o conscience_n touch_v with_o a_o effectual_a knowledge_n and_o sense_n of_o sin_n but_o you_o never_o know_v any_o such_o that_o do_v attain_v to_o a_o clear_a and_o certain_a knowledge_n the_o lord_n will_v teach_v sinner_n say_v david_n psal._n 25._o 8._o that_o be_v such_o as_o know_v and_o feel_v themselves_o to_o be_v most_o miserable_a and_o grievous_a sinner_n in_o the_o way_n and_o vers_n 9_o the_o meek_a such_o he_o mean_v as_o be_v make_v meek_a this_o way_n such_o as_o through_o poverty_n of_o spirit_n and_o mourning_n for_o that_o be_v make_v meek_a and_o humble_a according_a to_o that_o gradation_n our_o saviour_n use_v mat._n 5._o 3_o 4_o 5._o will_n he_o guide_v in_o judgement_n and_o the_o meek_a will_v he_o teach_v his_o way_n and_o of_o the_o rest_n the_o apostle_n paul_n say_v that_o such_o as_o have_v pleasure_n in_o unholinesse_n and_o unrighteousness_n can_v receive_v the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n no_o nor_o believe_v the_o truth_n but_o shall_v be_v apt_a to_o believe_v lie_n and_o to_o be_v seduce_v 2._o thess._n 2._o 10_o 12._o 2._o till_o man_n have_v the_o true_a knowledge_n and_o sense_n of_o sin_n they_o can_v never_o know_v christ_n to_o the_o comfort_n and_o salvation_n of_o their_o own_o soul_n of_o this_o also_o we_o have_v a_o experiment_n in_o this_o poor_a woman_n of_o samaria_n she_o never_o know_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n nor_o who_o it_o be_v that_o speak_v unto_o she_o she_o know_v not_o christ_n aright_o nor_o esteem_v of_o he_o till_o he_o have_v discover_v to_o she_o her_o sin_n such_o only_a be_v fit_a to_o come_v to_o christ_n matth._n 11._o 28._o such_o and_o such_o only_a shall_v be_v refresh_v by_o he_o as_o be_v weary_a and_o heavy_a lade_v this_o way_n and_o indeed_o that_o no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o true_a comfort_n till_o he_o have_v the_o true_a knowledge_n and_o sense_n of_o his_o sin_n be_v evident_a by_o this_o that_o no_o man_n can_v find_v mercy_n with_o god_n for_o the_o pardon_n of_o his_o sin_n till_o he_o can_v with_o a_o penitent_a and_o humble_a heart_n confess_v his_o sin_n unto_o god_n proverb_n 28._o 13._o he_o that_o cover_v his_o sin_n shall_v not_o prosper_v but_o he_o that_o confess_v and_o forsake_v they_o shall_v find_v mercy_n and_o therefore_o david_n use_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n to_o move_v god_n to_o mercy_n psalm_n 51._o 3._o for_o i_o acknowledge_v my_o transgression_n and_o my_o sin_n be_v ever_o before_o i_o many_o think_v that_o the_o ministry_n that_o plain_o and_o powerful_o rebuke_v sin_n serve_v to_o no_o other_o use_n then_o to_o bring_v man_n to_o despair_n and_o to_o fill_v they_o with_o melancholy_a but_o this_o be_v a_o fond_a conceit_n the_o true_a knowledge_n and_o sense_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o only_a way_n to_o comfort_n john_n 16._o 7_o 8._o christ_n say_v the_o spirit_n the_o comforter_n which_o he_o will_v send_v shall_v reprove_v and_o convince_v the_o world_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n never_o comfort_v any_o till_o he_o have_v first_o reprove_v and_o convince_v they_o therefore_o paul_n rejoice_v great_o to_o hear_v of_o the_o corinthian_n sorrow_n 2._o cor._n 7._o 7._o and_o tell_v they_o ver_fw-la 8._o that_o he_o repent_v he_o not_o that_o he_o have_v make_v they_o sorrowful_a and_o say_v ver_n 9_o that_o he_o have_v do_v they_o no_o hurt_n at_o all_o in_o reprove_v they_o so_o sharp_o and_o bring_v they_o to_o such_o heaviness_n and_o give_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o ver_fw-la 10._o godly_a sorrow_n cause_v repentance_n never_o to_o be_v repent_v of_o but_o worldly_a sorrow_n cause_v death_n and_o the_o apostle_n james_n when_o he_o have_v exhort_v they_o to_o humiliation_n for_o sin_n and_o say_v jam._n 4._o 9_o be_v afflict_v and_o mourn_v and_o weep_v let_v your_o laughter_n be_v turn_v to_o mourning_n and_o your_o joy_n into_o heaviness_n he_o prevent_v this_o objection_n and_o tell_v they_o ver_fw-la 10._o if_o you_o be_v once_o thus_o humble_v than_o he_o will_v lift_v you_o up_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o be_v the_o way_n to_o sound_v comfort_n according_a to_o that_o promise_n he_o have_v speak_v of_o ver_fw-la 6._o god_n resist_v the_o proud_a and_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o humble_a 3._o till_o man_n have_v the_o true_a knowledge_n and_o sense_n of_o sin_n their_o heart_n can_v never_o be_v subdue_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o god_n nor_o come_v to_o a_o true_a reverence_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n this_o also_o may_v be_v see_v in_o this_o poor_a woman_n till_o christ_n tell_v she_o of_o her_o sin_n she_o answer_v he_o scornful_o and_o reject_v he_o and_o object_v and_o reason_v against_o he_o what_o be_v it_o in_o the_o ministry_n of_o peter_n that_o wrought_v that_o wonderful_a conversion_n when_o about_o three_o thousand_o soul_n receive_v the_o word_n glad_o and_o be_v
baptize_v and_o add_v to_o the_o church_n act._n 2._o 41._o even_o such_o as_o have_v before_o mock_v and_o scorn_v the_o apostle_n ver_fw-la 13._o sure_o it_o be_v this_o plain_a and_o effectual_a discovery_n of_o their_o sin_n god_n have_v make_v say_v he_o to_o they_o ver_fw-la 36._o that_o same_o jesus_n who_o you_o have_v crucify_v both_o lord_n and_o christ._n now_o when_o they_o hear_v this_o say_v the_o holy_a story_n ver_fw-la 37._o they_o be_v prick_v in_o their_o heart_n what_o be_v that_o in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o wrought_v such_o a_o change_n in_o the_o man_n that_o be_v before_o ignorant_a and_o a_o infidel_n of_o who_o we_o read_v 1._o corinth_n 14._o 23._o sure_o it_o be_v this_o plain_a and_o effectual_a discovery_n of_o his_o sin_n unto_o he_o he_o be_v convince_v of_o all_o say_v the_o apostle_n ver_fw-la 24_o 25._o he_o be_v judge_v of_o all_o all_o the_o preacher_n that_o he_o hear_v as_o if_o they_o have_v conspire_v together_o do_v discover_v to_o he_o his_o sin_n and_o damnable_a estate_n and_o even_o convince_v his_o conscience_n of_o it_o and_o then_o be_v the_o secret_n of_o his_o heart_n make_v manifest_a and_o so_o fall_v down_o on_o his_o face_n he_o worship_v god_n and_o report_v that_o god_n be_v in_o they_o of_o a_o truth_n the_o man_n that_o know_v sin_n aright_o and_o the_o burden_n and_o danger_n of_o it_o will_v be_v desirous_a to_o know_v what_o he_o may_v do_v to_o please_v god_n he_o will_v be_v obedient_a and_o tractable_a ready_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o god_n shall_v require_v of_o he_o and_o till_o then_o man_n will_v hear_v what_o they_o list_v and_o do_v what_o they_o list_v see_v this_o in_o the_o fruit_n of_o john_n baptist_n ministry_n when_o he_o in_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o eliah_n have_v sharp_o reprove_v his_o hearer_n and_o denounce_v god_n vengeance_n against_o they_o and_o so_o humble_v they_o deep_o with_o sense_n of_o sin_n and_o fear_v of_o god_n wrath_n then_o even_o the_o publican_n and_o soldier_n also_o as_o we_o read_v luke_n 3._o 12_o 14._o come_v to_o he_o and_o say_v master_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v and_o in_o saul_n act._n 9_o 6._o when_o he_o tremble_v and_o be_v astonish_v by_o this_o mean_n than_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v lord_n what_o will_v thou_o have_v i_o to_o do_v if_o any_o man_n shall_v object_v and_o say_v what_o need_v preacher_n trouble_v themselves_o with_o this_o see_v there_o be_v no_o man_n so_o simple_a but_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o sinner_n object_n yea_o his_o own_o conscience_n will_v tell_v he_o that_o it_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o these_o and_o these_o thing_n that_o himself_o have_v do_v be_v sin_n as_o well_o as_o the_o preacher_n can_v tell_v he_o i_o answer_v yes_o sometime_o it_o will_v do_v so_o indeed_o but_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n to_o bring_v a_o man_n to_o a_o effectual_a knowledge_n of_o his_o sin_n answ._n this_o woman_n be_v not_o so_o simple_a but_o she_o know_v that_o she_o live_v in_o adultery_n and_o that_o that_o be_v a_o sin_n but_o she_o come_v not_o to_o remorse_n and_o repentance_n till_o christ_n have_v tell_v she_o so_o also_o be_v david_n bring_v to_o a_o save_a knowledge_n of_o his_o sin_n even_o by_o nathan_n plain_a and_o effectual_a reprove_v of_o he_o 2._o sam._n 12._o 12_o 13._o true_a it_o be_v the_o conscience_n of_o every_o man_n will_v when_o god_n shall_v awaken_v it_o tell_v a_o man_n of_o his_o sin_n plain_o and_o round_o severe_o and_o sharp_o as_o we_o may_v see_v rom._n 2._o 15_o 16._o but_o it_o lie_v a_o sleep_n for_o a_o time_n and_o will_v either_o say_v nothing_o or_o flatter_v a_o man_n and_o be_v therefore_o compare_v to_o a_o band-dogge_n that_o lie_v at_o the_o door_n gen._n 4._o 7._o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v the_o effectual_a and_o mighty_a or_o dinance_n of_o god_n to_o awaken_v the_o conscience_n rom._n 3._o 20._o by_o the_o law_n come_v the_o knowledge_n of_o sin_n the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v first_o for_o the_o minister_n 1._o 1._o to_o exhort_v he_o not_o to_o neglect_v this_o part_n of_o his_o ministry_n by_o the_o consideration_n 1._o of_o the_o great_a charge_n that_o be_v lay_v upon_o he_o and_o the_o danger_n he_o be_v in_o if_o he_o neglect_v it_o think_v serious_o of_o these_o two_o place_n if_o thou_o do_v sy_n not_o speak_v to_o warn_v the_o wicked_a from_o his_o way_n say_v the_o lord_n ezek._n 33._o 8._o that_o wicked_a man_n shall_v die_v in_o his_o iniquity_n but_o his_o blood_n will_v i_o require_v at_o thy_o hand_n and_o jer._n 1._o 17._o speak_v unto_o they_o all_o that_o i_o command_v thou_o be_v not_o dismay_v at_o their_o face_n lest_o i_o confound_v thou_o before_o they_o 2._o of_o the_o small_a cause_n he_o have_v to_o despair_v of_o good_a success_n in_o it_o if_o he_o perform_v it_o with_o a_o good_a heart_n how_o forcible_a be_v right_a word_n job_n 6._o 25._o see_v a_o example_n of_o this_o in_o 2._o king_n 5._o 13_o 14._o what_o success_n the_o admonition_n and_o reproof_n even_o of_o a_o servant_n have_v through_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n with_o a_o great_a lord_n that_o be_v but_o a_o heathen_a man_n 3._o of_o the_o recompense_n and_o supply_n god_n will_v make_v of_o any_o friend_n he_o shall_v lose_v thereby_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o have_v leave_v willing_o lose_v house_n or_o brethren_n or_o sister_n or_o father_n say_v our_o saviour_n mar._n 10._o 29_o 30._o or_o mother_n or_o wife_n or_o child_n or_o land_n for_o my_o sake_n and_o the_o gospel_n but_o he_o shall_v receive_v a_o hundred_o fold_v now_o in_o this_o time_n house_n and_o brethren_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v eternal_a life_n 4._o of_o the_o reverence_n and_o estimation_n that_o be_v gain_v by_o it_o usual_o even_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o such_o as_o at_o first_o most_o distaste_a it_o pro._n 28._o 23._o he_o that_o rebuke_v a_o man_n afterward_o shall_v find_v more_o favour_n than_o he_o that_o flatter_v with_o the_o tongue_n 2._o to_o exhort_v he_o that_o since_o he_o must_v be_v a_o reproover_n of_o sin_n in_o his_o people_n he_o 2._o use_v all_o mean_n and_o carry_v himself_o towards_o they_o so_o as_o his_o reproof_n may_v prevail_v with_o they_o and_o those_o be_v chief_o two_o 1._o he_o must_v so_o carry_v himself_o towards_o they_o in_o his_o whole_a course_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v he_o love_v they_o unfeigned_o see_v the_o force_n of_o this_o in_o the_o apostle_n speech_n rom._n 15._o 14._o i_o be_o persuade_v of_o you_o my_o brethren_n that_o you_o also_o be_v full_a of_o goodness_n that_o be_v of_o kindness_n and_o readiness_n to_o do_v good_a to_o they_o you_o live_v with_o fill_v with_o all_o knowledge_n able_a to_o admonish_v one_o another_o teach_v we_o that_o no_o man_n be_v so_o fit_a to_o admonish_v another_o as_o he_o that_o be_v both_o full_a of_o knowledge_n and_o able_a thereby_o to_o convince_v he_o and_o also_o full_a of_o goodness_n and_o one_o of_o who_o the_o party_n may_v be_v persuade_v that_o he_o bear_v a_o kind_n and_o love_a affection_n towards_o he_o 2._o he_o must_v so_o live_v as_o by_o his_o unblameable_a and_o holy_a conversation_n he_o may_v gain_v authority_n in_o their_o heart_n see_v how_o this_o will_v prevail_v it_o be_v say_v of_o herod_n mar._n 6._o 20._o that_o he_o fear_v john_n the_o baptist_n and_o observe_v he_o and_o when_o he_o hear_v he_o he_o do_v many_o thing_n and_o hear_v he_o glad_o and_o the_o reason_n that_o move_v he_o so_o to_o do_v be_v say_v to_o be_v this_o because_o he_o know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o just_a and_o a_o holy_a man_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o apostle_n give_v that_o charge_n unto_o timothy_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 12._o let_v no_o man_n despise_v thy_o youth_n but_o be_v thou_o a_o example_n of_o the_o believer_n in_o word_n in_o conversation_n in_o charity_n in_o spirit_n in_o faith_n in_o purity_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v if_o thou_o be_v such_o a_o one_o they_o will_v never_o despise_v thou_o no_o not_o when_o thou_o shall_v command_v and_o teach_v when_o thou_o shall_v teach_v and_o reprove_v they_o with_o boldness_n and_o authority_n though_o thou_o be_v so_o young_a a_o man_n the_o second_o use_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v for_o all_o god_n people_n 1._o to_o admit_v and_o accept_v of_o this_o part_n of_o god_n ordinance_n even_o of_o the_o word_n of_o reproof_n as_o well_o as_o of_o instruction_n or_o comfort_n receive_v with_o meekness_n the_o engraft_a word_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v your_o soul_n jam._n 1._o 21._o that_o be_v every_o part_n of_o god_n word_n
as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1._o cor._n 4._o 5._o in_o another_o case_n and_o even_o in_o this_o life_n god_n do_v strange_o discover_v many_o unclean_a person_n that_o have_v live_v long_o in_o secret_a solomon_n bring_v in_o the_o fornicator_n complain_v and_o bewail_v his_o misery_n even_o in_o this_o respect_n pro._n 5._o 14._o i_o be_v almost_o bring_v into_o the_o extremity_n of_o misery_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o assembly_n and_o observe_v this_o in_o they_o that_o be_v the_o cunning_a in_o this_o sin_n that_o though_o no_o body_n peradventure_o can_v convince_v they_o evident_o of_o the_o fact_n yet_o every_o body_n through_o this_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n condemn_v they_o for_o it_o as_o the_o lord_n see_v their_o secret_a villainy_n so_o even_o in_o this_o life_n oft_o time_n he_o use_v to_o testify_v against_o they_o lecture_n the_o seventeen_o june_n 20._o 1609._o the_o three_o error_n of_o mind_n whereby_o satan_n deceive_v man_n and_o draw_v they_o to_o this_o sin_n and_o harden_v they_o in_o it_o be_v the_o hope_n of_o impunity_n for_o say_v he_o admit_v thou_o do_v slip_v and_o have_v the_o ill_a fortune_n to_o be_v discover_v what_o shall_v thou_o be_v the_o worse_a for_o it_o 1._o with_o man_n thou_o shall_v not_o fare_v much_o the_o worse_o for_o this_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n 1._o will_v not_o meddle_v with_o thou_o all_o the_o punishment_n be_v if_o thou_o be_v a_o poor_a body_n but_o to_o stand_v a_o while_n in_o the_o church_n and_o say_v thou_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o and_o if_o thou_o be_v rich_a thou_o may_v avoid_v that_o too_o but_o what_o be_v that_o and_o second_o as_o for_o thy_o credit_n thou_o shall_v not_o lose_v much_o unless_o it_o be_v with_o a_o sort_n of_o precisian_n who_o every_o man_n despise_v but_o for_o the_o most_o thou_o see_v 2._o they_o will_v like_v never_o the_o worse_o of_o any_o for_o this_o not_o of_o a_o servant_n nor_o of_o a_o neighbour_n nay_o thou_o may_v see_v that_o man_n that_o make_v most_o open_a profession_n of_o this_o sin_n be_v esteem_v and_o desire_v by_o many_o as_o the_o best_a companion_n and_o professor_n also_o will_v be_v as_o ready_a to_o show_v any_o kindness_n to_o such_o as_o be_v note_v for_o this_o as_o to_o any_o other_o and_o three_o as_o for_o the_o lord_n thou_o can_v see_v no_o cause_n to_o think_v that_o he_o like_v much_o the_o worse_o of_o a_o man_n for_o this_o if_o he_o do_v neither_o thyself_o nor_o many_o 3._o other_o that_o thou_o know_v can_v prosper_v as_o they_o do_v this_o as_o both_o experience_n and_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o prevail_v marvelous_o with_o most_o man_n eccl._n 8._o 11._o because_o sentence_v against_o a_o evil_a work_n be_v not_o execute_v speedy_o therefore_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o child_n of_o man_n be_v full_o set_v in_o they_o to_o do_v evil_a see_v also_o the_o force_n that_o be_v in_o this_o to_o harden_v man_n in_o all_o kind_n of_o sin_n mal._n 3._o 15._o we_o call_v the_o proud_a happy_a say_v the_o profane_a of_o that_o age_n yea_o they_o that_o work_v wickedness_n be_v set_v up_o yea_o they_o that_o tempt_v the_o lord_n be_v even_o deliver_v certain_o if_o the_o law_n have_v as_o well_o provide_v for_o and_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o magistrate_n be_v as_o ready_a to_o be_v draw_v out_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o this_o sin_n as_o of_o theft_n we_o shall_v have_v as_o few_o whoremonger_n as_o thief_n or_o if_o in_o the_o want_n of_o the_o law_n in_o this_o case_n all_o such_o as_o be_v esteem_v honest_a and_o free_a from_o this_o sin_n themselves_o will_v but_o hate_v it_o in_o other_o and_o discountenance_v it_o as_o they_o may_v doubtless_o they_o may_v restrain_v many_o from_o it_o but_o first_o the_o law_n have_v not_o appoint_v any_o punishment_n for_o it_o that_o be_v any_o way_n proportionable_a to_o the_o heinousness_n of_o the_o sin_n and_o second_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n almost_o every_o where_o be_v unwilling_a to_o use_v that_o authority_n that_o the_o law_n have_v give_v he_o for_o the_o punishment_n of_o this_o sin_n but_o count_v it_o as_o a_o disparagement_n unto_o he_o to_o meddle_v with_o it_o at_o all_o and_o three_o the_o punishment_n of_o cart_v and_o whip_v which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v inflict_v especial_o in_o market_n town_n be_v grow_v out_o of_o use_n and_o four_a some_o magistrate_n and_o private_a person_n do_v make_v so_o light_a account_n of_o this_o sin_n that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o that_o this_o sin_n be_v grow_v so_o common_a as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o convince_a of_o this_o error_n and_o preserve_v man_n from_o it_o two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v answ._n first_o that_o though_o the_o magistrate_n do_v not_o yet_o it_o be_v his_o duty_n to_o punish_v this_o sin_n as_o far_o as_o law_n give_v liberty_n and_o his_o great_a sin_n that_o he_o do_v not_o and_o though_o private_a christian_n do_v not_o yet_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o show_v detestation_n to_o this_o sin_n second_o though_o man_n fail_v in_o their_o duty_n yet_o be_v there_o no_o cause_n any_o shall_v commit_v this_o sin_n upon_o hope_n of_o impunity_n for_o though_o man_n do_v not_o yet_o will_v god_n certain_o punish_v this_o sin_n for_o first_o as_o for_o the_o magistrate_n we_o know_v that_o by_o his_o call_n he_o be_v custos_fw-la utriusque_fw-la tabulae_fw-la and_o charge_v with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o see_v it_o keep_v by_o those_o that_o be_v under_o his_o authority_n he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n to_o take_v vengeance_n on_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a rom._n 13._o 4._o the_o authority_n he_o have_v and_o the_o pre-eminence_n god_n have_v give_v he_o above_o other_o man_n be_v give_v he_o to_o that_o end_n and_o the_o magistrate_n be_v bind_v by_o god_n law_n to_o punish_v this_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o job_n 31._o 11._o this_o be_v a_o wickedness_n and_o a_o iniquity_n to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o judge_n and_o both_o of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o of_o every_o private_a christian_a this_o be_v require_v as_o he_o desire_v that_o god_n mercy_n shall_v be_v upon_o he_o and_o his_o posterity_n that_o he_o abhor_v this_o sin_n and_o do_v that_o that_o in_o he_o lie_v to_o bring_v it_o unto_o shame_n and_o punishment_n amos_n 5._o 15._o hate_v the_o evil_a and_o love_v the_o good_a and_o establish_v judgement_n in_o the_o gate_n it_o may_v be_v that_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o host_n will_v be_v merciful_a to_o the_o remnant_n of_o jacob_n i_o know_v it_o be_v esteem_v by_o many_o a_o sign_n of_o a_o good_a nature_n and_o disposition_n to_o be_v kind_a to_o all_o person_n how_o lewd_a soever_o they_o be_v but_o mark_v what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o this_o kindness_n 1._o he_o make_v it_o a_o sign_n that_o a_o man_n have_v no_o fear_n of_o god_n in_o he_o when_o he_o can_v abhor_v sin_n psal._n 36._o 1_o 4._o 2._o he_o say_v that_o that_o man_n make_v no_o conscience_n of_o sin_n himself_o that_o be_v ready_a to_o speak_v in_o favour_n of_o a_o lewd_a man_n pro._n 28._o 4._o they_o that_o forsake_v the_o law_n praise_v the_o wicked_a and_o be_v apt_a to_o speak_v for_o they_o and_o to_o take_v their_o part_n but_o they_o that_o keep_v the_o law_n set_v themselves_o against_o they_o 3._o he_o make_v it_o a_o great_a sign_n of_o a_o ungracious_a heart_n for_o a_o man_n to_o favour_v sin_n in_o other_o then_o to_o commit_v sin_n himself_o rom._n 1._o 31._o which_o man_n though_o they_o know_v the_o law_n of_o god_n how_o that_o they_o that_o commit_v such_o thing_n be_v worthy_a of_o death_n yet_o not_o only_o do_v the_o same_o but_o also_o favour_v they_o that_o do_v they_o and_o whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v count_v pride_n and_o malice_n and_o cruelty_n for_o a_o man_n to_o seek_v the_o disgrace_n or_o punishment_n of_o any_o lewd_a person_n the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v there_o be_v no_o true_a love_n in_o any_o but_o in_o such_o only_a 1._o there_o be_v no_o true_a love_n to_o god_n in_o any_o that_o can_v unfeigned_o hate_v sin_n whereby_o he_o be_v dishonour_v psal._n 97._o 10._o you_o that_o love_v the_o lord_n hate_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v evil_a 2._o there_o be_v no_o true_a love_n to_o ourselves_o to_o our_o family_n and_o the_o place_n we_o live_v in_o unless_o we_o hate_v such_o sin_n as_o will_v bring_v god_n curse_n upon_o us._n till_o achan_n be_v punish_v god_n curse_n be_v upon_o the_o whole_a host_n of_o israel_n josh._n 7._o 12._o neither_o will_v i_o be_v with_o you_o any_o more_o except_o you_o destroy_v the_o excommunicate_a from_o among_o you_o and_o
christ_n through_o who_o only_o we_o hope_v to_o find_v mercy_n with_o god_n hate_v sin_n with_o a_o infinite_a hatred_n exod._n 23._o 21._o provoke_v he_o not_o for_o he_o will_v not_o spare_v your_o misdeed_n because_o my_o name_n be_v in_o he_o and_o it_o be_v a_o far_o more_o fearful_a thing_n for_o a_o wicked_a man_n though_o not_o for_o such_o a_o one_o as_o david_n be_v to_o fall_v into_o his_o hand_n to_o have_v his_o displeasure_n than_o the_o displeasure_n of_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n heb._n 10._o when_o the_o apostle_n have_v say_v verse_n 30._o vengeance_n be_v i_o i_o will_v recompense_v say_v the_o lord_n and_o again_o the_o lord_n shall_v judge_v his_o people_n whereas_o some_o desperate_a sinner_n may_v have_v say_v as_o now_o many_o do_v if_o that_o be_v all_o i_o care_v not_o let_v i_o shun_v the_o shame_n and_o punishment_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o for_o the_o lord_n i_o shall_v do_v well_o enough_o with_o he_o he_o add_v verse_n 31._o it_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o live_a god_n psal._n 75._o 7._o thou_o even_o thou_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v and_o who_o shall_v stand_v in_o thy_o sight_n when_o thou_o be_v angry_a this_o the_o elect_n have_v feel_v this_o make_v david_n cry_v out_o psal._n 51._o 4._o against_o thou_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o shun_v and_o do_v this_o evil_n in_o thy_o sight_n his_o worldly_a punishment_n and_o shame_n never_o trouble_v he_o in_o comparison_n of_o this_o and_o this_o shall_v the_o wicked_a man_n in_o the_o world_n feel_v one_o day_n when_o god_n shall_v awaken_v his_o conscience_n he_o shall_v wish_v rather_o he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n then_o with_o the_o lord_n he_o will_v make_v no_o reckon_n of_o the_o displeasure_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o lord_n wrath_n see_v a_o experiment_n of_o this_o in_o judas_n he_o care_v not_o for_o displease_v the_o chief_a priest_n and_o elder_n nor_o for_o shame_v himself_o so_o public_o but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v the_o sense_n of_o be_v intolerable_a to_o he_o mat._n 27._o 4_o 5._o and_o if_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v so_o intolerable_a in_o this_o life_n to_o the_o wicked_a what_o shall_v it_o be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n as_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v call_v rom._n 2._o 5._o sure_o the_o stout_a and_o most_o profane_a sinner_n that_o in_o this_o life_n have_v make_v so_o small_a account_n of_o god_n displeasure_n and_o think_v they_o can_v do_v well_o enough_o with_o he_o and_o have_v glory_v so_o much_o in_o christ_n apoc._n 6._o 15._o 17._o even_o king_n and_o captain_n and_o every_o bond_n man_n and_o every_o freeman_n shall_v cry_v to_o the_o mountain_n and_o rock_n fall_v on_o we_o and_o hide_v we_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n &_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lamb_n for_o the_o great_a day_n of_o his_o wrath_n be_v come_v and_o who_o can_v stand_v 2._o as_o ready_a as_o the_o lord_n be_v to_o forgive_v sin_n and_o easy_a to_o be_v entreat_v yet_o can_v he_o not_o pardon_v any_o but_o upon_o their_o unfeigned_a repentance_n it_o be_v as_o possible_a for_o a_o woman_n to_o be_v deliver_v of_o a_o child_n in_o her_o sleep_n as_o for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o guilt_n and_o punishment_n of_o this_o sin_n before_o he_o have_v unfeigned_o repent_v christ_n be_v call_v a_o prince_n and_o a_o saviour_n to_o give_v repentance_n unto_o israel_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n act_n 5._o 31._o he_o can_v give_v remission_n of_o sin_n to_o none_o but_o such_o as_o he_o have_v give_v repentance_n unto_o 3._o though_o the_o lord_n be_v so_o merciful_a that_o upon_o repentance_n he_o give_v pardon_n to_o every_o sinner_n yet_o such_o a_o man_n sin_n may_v be_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v most_o severe_o and_o sharp_o correct_v and_o scourge_v he_o for_o it_o even_o after_o he_o have_v repent_v and_o obtain_v mercy_n and_o pardon_n for_o though_o when_o god_n pardon_v sin_n he_o remit_v not_o only_o the_o guilt_n of_o it_o but_o the_o punishment_n also_o yet_o he_o chastise_v oft_o time_n very_o sharp_o such_o as_o he_o have_v pardon_v see_v a_o excellent_a experiment_n of_o this_o in_o david_n when_o nathan_n have_v deal_v particular_o with_o he_o he_o repent_v and_o god_n pardon_v his_o sin_n 2._o sam._n 12._o 13._o but_o do_v he_o hear_v no_o more_o of_o his_o sin_n after_o he_o have_v repent_v yes_o the_o outward_a misery_n threaten_v by_o the_o prophet_n 2._o sam._n 12._o 10_o 11._o fall_v all_o upon_o he_o for_o all_o that_o and_o he_o endure_v such_o inward_a anguish_n of_o conscience_n as_o put_v he_o to_o such_o pain_n as_o if_o all_o his_o bone_n have_v be_v break_v with_o it_o ps._n 51._o 8._o and_o in_o comparison_n whereof_o all_o his_o outward_a misery_n seem_v but_o as_o flea-bite_n to_o he_o and_o if_o thou_o belong_v unto_o he_o be_v sure_a he_o will_v deal_v with_o thou_o also_o after_o this_o manner_n let_v no_o man_n therefore_o say_v howsoever_o i_o have_v live_v if_o i_o repent_v i_o shall_v never_o be_v damn_v and_o so_o long_o i_o care_v not_o for_o though_o thou_o may_v be_v sure_a thou_o shall_v never_o be_v damn_v if_o thou_o can_v unfeigned_o repent_v yet_o may_v thou_o for_o all_o thy_o repentance_n fall_v into_o many_o great_a misery_n in_o this_o life_n such_o as_o may_v make_v thy_o hart_n to_o ache_v and_o such_o as_o if_o thou_o can_v believe_v and_o think_v upon_o thou_o will_v be_v loath_a to_o buy_v thy_o sweet_a sin_n at_o so_o dear_a a_o rate_n the_o magistrate_n thou_o see_v have_v many_o punishment_n for_o sin_n beside_o death_n he_o have_v the_o stock_n and_o the_o gaol_n and_o the_o whip_n and_o the_o pillory_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o have_v the_o lord_n now_o come_v i_o to_o the_o second_o preseruative_n against_o this_o tentation_n which_o be_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o ourselves_o and_o of_o that_o estate_n we_o come_v into_o when_o once_o we_o fall_v into_o such_o sin_n for_o every_o unclean_a person_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o fear_n that_o when_o once_o he_o have_v commit_v this_o sin_n he_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o repent_v of_o it_o this_o i_o prove_v by_o four_o reason_n 1._o no_o man_n be_v able_a to_o repent_v of_o himself_o but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a and_o supernatural_a grace_n of_o god_n whereby_o any_o man_n be_v make_v able_a to_o repent_v 2._o tim._n 2._o 25_o 26._o in_o meekness_n instruct_v those_o that_o oppose_v themselves_o if_o god_n peradventure_o will_v give_v they_o repentance_n to_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o they_o may_v recover_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v take_v captive_a by_o he_o at_o his_o will_n observe_v in_o those_o word_n 1._o this_o come_v of_o god_n gift_n only_o 2._o that_o every_o sinner_n be_v in_o satan_n snare_n out_o of_o which_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v hard_a to_o get_v out_o when_o once_o a_o man_n have_v fall_v into_o any_o sin_n against_o his_o conscience_n it_o be_v natural_a for_o he_o to_o go_v on_o in_o it_o further_o and_o further_o till_o his_o heart_n be_v harden_v in_o it_o eph._n 4._o 18_o 19_o the_o gentile_n walk_v in_o the_o vanity_n of_o their_o mind_n have_v their_o understanding_n darken_v be_v alienate_v from_o the_o life_n of_o god_n through_o the_o ignorance_n that_o be_v in_o they_o because_o of_o the_o blindness_n of_o their_o heart_n who_o be_v past_a feeling_n have_v give_v themselves_o over_o unto_o lasciviousness_n to_o work_v all_o uncleanness_n with_o greediness_n it_o be_v natural_a for_o sin_n to_o harden_v the_o heart_n and_o to_o deprive_v a_o man_n of_o that_o sense_n and_o trouble_v he_o find_v when_o he_o first_o commit_v it_o heb._n 3._o 13._o take_v heed_n lest_o any_o of_o you_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n yea_o when_o a_o man_n have_v once_o accustom_v himself_o to_o any_o sin_n he_o can_v leave_v it_o or_o repent_v of_o it_o though_o he_o will_v no_o more_o than_o the_o leopard_n can_v change_v his_o spot_n jer._n 13._o 23._o 2._o god_n have_v threaten_v to_o punish_v such_o as_o sin_n against_o the_o light_n of_o their_o heart_n presumptuous_o by_o withdraw_v his_o grace_n from_o they_o and_o harden_v their_o heart_n deut._n 29._o 19_o 20._o he_o will_v not_o spare_v that_o man_n that_o bless_v himself_o in_o his_o heart_n because_o i_o have_v purge_v thou_o say_v the_o lord_n ezek._n 24._o 13._o and_o thou_o be_v not_o purge_v thou_o shall_v not_o be_v purge_v from_o thy_o filthiness_n any_o more_o till_o
i_o have_v cause_v my_o fury_n to_o rest_v upon_o thou_o when_o pharaoh_n have_v harden_v his_o heart_n first_o by_o continue_v in_o sin_n and_o resist_v the_o work_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o he_o exod._n 8._o 15._o then_o do_v god_n harden_v his_o heart_n in_o a_o supernatural_a manner_n exod._n 9_o 12._o 3._o above_o all_o sin_n god_n have_v special_o threaten_v to_o punish_v this_o sin_n with_o hardness_n of_o heart_n and_o impenitency_n prou._n 2._o 19_o none_o that_o go_v unto_o she_o the_o strange_a woman_n return_v again_o neither_o take_v they_o hold_v on_o the_o path_n of_o life_n and_o prou._n 23._o 27._o a_o whore_n be_v a_o deep_a ditch_n and_o a_o strange_a wom●…_n be_v a_o narrow_a pit_n of_o these_o sinner_n chief_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n reserve_v they_o to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v punish_v 2._o pet._n 2._o 9_o 10._o 4._o experience_n prove_v this_o also_o for_o 1._o observe_v it_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o that_o be_v once_o give_v up_o to_o this_o sin_n be_v more_o impudent_a than_o other_o sinner_n more_o graceless_a profane_a and_o blasphemous_a derider_n and_o contemner_n of_o all_o piety_n therefore_o impudent_a sinner_n be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o whore_n forehead_n jer._n 3._o 3_o and_o that_o be_v thus_o describe_v pro._n 7._o 13._o she_o catch_v he_o and_o kiss_v he_o therefore_o be_v they_o compare_v to_o dog_n deut._n 23._o 18._o 2._o sam._n 3._o 8._o therefore_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v destitute_a of_o understanding_n and_o to_o have_v lose_v even_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n pro._n 6._o 32._o and_o 7._o 7._o and_o prou._n 9_o 13._o the_o whore_n herself_o be_v say_v to_o be_v simple_a and_o to_o know_v nothing_o and_o the_o lewd_a man_n that_o be_v allure_v and_o overcome_v by_o she_o vers_n 16._o be_v say_v to_o be_v simple_a and_o void_a of_o understanding_n 〈◊〉_d we_o have_v know_v many_o that_o have_v fall_v into_o this_o sin_n and_o live_v in_o it_o but_o how_o many_o have_v we_o know_v that_o have_v true_o repent_v it_o be_v a_o strange_a speech_n of_o solomon_n eccl._n 7._o 28._o one_o man_n among_o a_o thousand_o have_v i_o find_v but_o a_o woman_n among_o all_o those_o have_v i_o not_o find_v i_o can_v deny_v but_o we_o may_v have_v know_v many_o that_o have_v come_v thus_o far_o as_o to_o confess_v this_o sin_n and_o to_o show_v sorrow_n for_o it_o and_o to_o leave_v it_o also_o but_o alas_o there_o be_v more_o require_v to_o true_a repentance_n than_o this_o come_v to_o 1._o not_o every_o sinner_n that_o can_v confess_v his_o sin_n may_v be_v say_v to_o repent_v for_o then_o pharaoh_n repent_v exod._n 9_o 27._o and_o judas_n also_o mat._n 27._o 3_o 4._o but_o he_o that_o confess_v it_o 1._o particular_o as_o achan_n upon_o joshuahs_n fatherly_a counsel_n do_v josh._n 7._o 20._o 2._o free_o without_o extenuate_v of_o it_o or_o excuse_v it_o as_o paul_n do_v his_o 1._o tim._n 1._o 13._o 15._o dan._n 9_o 4._o 19_o of_o the_o sixteen_o verse_n that_o contain_v his_o prayer_n fourteen_o of_o they_o be_v spend_v in_o confess_v and_o aggravate_v of_o their_o sin_n 3._o with_o grief_n and_o shame_n as_o god_n people_n do_v 1._o sam._n 7._o 6._o when_o in_o their_o fast_n they_o shed_v tear_n so_o abundant_o as_o if_o they_o have_v draw_v bucket_n full_a of_o the_o water_n and_o pour_v they_o out_o before_o the_o lord_n 2._o not_o every_o sinner_n that_o sorrow_v for_o sin_n may_v be_v say_v to_o repent_v for_o so_o much_o be_v also_o say_v of_o judas_n mat._n 27._o 4._o and_o of_o ahab_n too_o 1._o king_n 21._o 19_o but_o he_o that_o sorrow_v 1._o deep_o and_o serious_o as_o a_o man_n will_v mourn_v for_o the_o loss_n of_o his_o only_a son_n or_o of_o his_o firstborn_a zach._n 12._o 10._o and_o proportionable_o to_o the_o quality_n of_o his_o sin_n as_o manasses_n do_v 2._o chron._n 33._o 12._o 2._o constant_o suffer_v sorrow_n to_o abide_v upon_o his_o heart_n and_o not_o seek_v to_o put_v it_o off_o by_o worldly_a comfort_n before_o it_o have_v have_v a_o good_a work_n in_o he_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o hold_v down_o our_o head_n for_o a_o day_n like_o a_o bulrush_n esa._n 58._o 5._o this_o be_v but_o a_o daub_v up_o of_o the_o breach_n god_n have_v make_v in_o our_o heart_n with_o untempered_a mortar_n as_o the_o prophet_n speak_v ezek._n 13._o 11._o that_o have_v not_o time_n enough_o allow_v in_o the_o make_n and_o temper_v of_o it_o and_o therefore_o can_v not_o last_v 8._o not_o for_o any_o worldly_a shame_n or_o hurt_v that_o his_o sin_n already_o have_v or_o be_v like_a to_o bring_v upon_o he_o nor_o for_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n wrath_n only_o but_o chief_o for_o that_o he_o have_v sin_v against_o and_o offend_v god_n against_o thou_o thou_o only_o have_v i_o sin_v say_v david_n psal._n 51._o 3._o therefore_o true_a repentance_n be_v call_v repentance_n towards_o god_n act._n 20._o 21._o 3._o not_o every_o sinner_n that_o have_v leave_v this_o sin_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v true_o repent_v for_o a_o man_n may_v grow_v weary_a of_o sin_n in_o carnal_a respect_n she_o have_v weary_v herself_o with_o lie_n say_v the_o lord_n ezek._n 24._o 12._o and_o sin_n may_v have_v leave_v he_o but_o he_o that_o 1._o leave_v sin_n upon_o a_o detestation_n to_o sin_n and_o a_o godly_a sorrow_n that_o he_o have_v offend_v god_n by_o it_o 2._o cor._n 7._o 10._o 11._o 2._o leave_v all_o know_a sin_n as_o well_o as_o some_o whosoever_o shall_v keep_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o yet_o offend_v witting_o and_o willing_o in_o one_o point_n he_o be_v guilty_a of_o all_o jam._n 2._o 10._o 3._o shun_v careful_o all_o show_n and_o appearance_n of_o evil_a 1._o thess._n 5._o 22._o all_o occasion_n and_o provocation_n to_o the_o sin_n he_o have_v leave_v true_a repentance_n have_v in_o it_o carefulness_n to_o shun_v all_o provocation_n and_o fear_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o same_o again_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 2._o cor._n 7._o 11._o and_o the_o true_a penitent_n will_v make_v a_o covenant_n with_o his_o eye_n as_o job_n do_v job_n 31._o 1._o 4._o that_o hate_v it_o in_o other_o and_o be_v careful_a to_o draw_v other_o from_o the_o sin_n that_o himself_o have_v leave_v then_o will_v i_o teach_v transgressor_n thy_o way_n and_o sinner_n shall_v be_v avert_v unto_o thou_o say_v david_n psal._n 51._o 13._o special_o those_o of_o his_o own_o family_n and_o such_o as_o he_o may_v most_o prevail_v withal_o job_n 11._o 14._o let_v not_o wickedness_n dwell_v in_o thy_o tabernacle_n the_o three_o preseruative_n against_o this_o tentation_n be_v the_o consider_v of_o the_o danger_n we_o have_v bring_v that_o party_n unto_o with_o who_o we_o have_v commit_v this_o sin_n for_o though_o the_o fornicator_n be_v sure_a god_n will_v give_v he_o grace_n to_o repent_v yet_o must_v it_o need_v be_v a_o great_a cause_n of_o fear_n and_o trouble_v to_o his_o conscience_n unless_o he_o be_v also_o sure_a that_o the_o party_n who_o he_o have_v draw_v to_o this_o sin_n have_v true_o repent_v as_o well_o as_o himself_o in_o this_o respect_n this_o sin_n be_v worse_a than_o either_o theft_n or_o murder_n in_o those_o the_o wrong_n that_o be_v do_v unto_o another_o may_v be_v do_v without_o any_o hurt_n or_o danger_n to_o his_o soul_n but_o so_o it_o be_v not_o in_o this_o sin_n in_o which_o respect_n we_o know_v this_o badge_n of_o god_n indignation_n be_v set_v upon_o jeroboam_fw-la oft_o after_o his_o death_n jeroboam_fw-la that_o make_v israel_n to_o sin_n now_o the_o use_n and_o end_n of_o all_o this_o that_o i_o have_v speak_v be_v not_o to_o drive_v any_o to_o despair_n for_o 1._o though_o it_o be_v so_o hard_a a_o thing_n true_o to_o repent_v and_o impossible_a to_o man_n yet_o be_v god_n able_a to_o give_v repentance_n to_o he_o that_o have_v commit_v and_o live_v long_o in_o this_o sin_n all_o thing_n be_v possible_a with_o god_n mat._n 19_o ●…6_n 27._o 2._o though_o few_o have_v obtain_v this_o grace_n to_o repent_v after_o they_o have_v commit_v this_o sin_n yet_o some_o have_v yea_o some_o example_n god_n have_v give_v we_o in_o his_o word_n for_o it_o as_o luk._n 7._o 37._o 50_o lest_o any_o humble_a sinner_n shall_v despair_v 3._o though_o god_n have_v never_o yet_o give_v to_o any_o this_o grace_n yet_o be_v he_o able_a to_o do_v it_o now_o to_o thou_o but_o i_o have_v thus_o far_o urge_v this_o point_n 1._o to_o persuade_v such_o as_o do_v offend_v this_o way_n to_o seek_v betimes_o with_o all_o earnestness_n and_o importunity_n for_o this_o grace_n of_o unfeigned_a repentance_n and_o not_o to_o grow_v secure_a upon_o hope_n that_o they_o may_v have_v it_o hereafter_o
when_o they_o will_n 2._o to_o persuade_v such_o as_o have_v heretofore_o live_v in_o this_o sin_n do_v now_o think_v they_o have_v true_o repent_v to_o examine_v their_o repentance_n careful_o 3._o to_o teach_v and_o persuade_v all_o man_n that_o whereas_o satan_n use_v to_o draw_v man_n to_o this_o and_o all_o other_o sin_n by_o this_o hope_n that_o they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o repent_v this_o above_o all_o thing_n shall_v terrify_v and_o restrain_v man_n from_o sin_n that_o they_o be_v uncertain_a whether_o they_o shall_v be_v ever_o able_a to_o repent_v yea_o that_o they_o have_v so_o great_a cause_n to_o fear_v that_o they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o repent_v and_o that_o they_o know_v the_o least_o sin_n they_o commit_v will_v damn_v they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o repent_v lecture_n the_o nineteen_o july_n 4._o 1609._o it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o come_v to_o the_o second_o use_n of_o the_o former_a doctrine_n that_o forasmuch_o as_o fornication_n and_o all_o uncleanness_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v so_o heinous_a and_o dangerous_a a_o sin_n we_o will_v therefore_o every_o one_o of_o we_o hearken_v unto_o and_o embrace_v that_o exhortation_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 6._o 18._o fly_v fornication_n and_o 2._o tim._n 2._o 22._o fly_v also_o from_o the_o lust_n of_o youth_n which_o be_v more_o than_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v abstain_v from_o fornication_n abstain_v from_o the_o lust_n of_o youth_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o no_o christian_n shall_v too_o far_o presume_v of_o his_o own_o strength_n in_o this_o case_n but_o to_o show_v his_o detestation_n of_o this_o sin_n and_o care_v to_o avoid_v it_o he_o shall_v fly_v as_o far_o from_o it_o as_o he_o can_v so_o that_o the_o exhortation_n consist_v of_o two_o branch_n 1._o that_o we_o shall_v shun_v all_o show_n and_o sign_n and_o appearance_n of_o this_o sin_n 2._o that_o we_o shall_v shun_v all_o occasion_n and_o provocation_n to_o this_o sin_n no_o christian_a must_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o abstain_v from_o this_o sin_n but_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v so_o far_o to_o detest_v it_o as_o to_o shun_v all_o show_n and_o appearance_n of_o it_o that_o may_v give_v man_n occasion_n to_o suspect_v we_o of_o it_o tush_o will_n some_o say_v what_o care_n i_o what_o man_n think_v of_o i_o so_o long_o as_o god_n and_o my_o own_o conscience_n can_v witness_v with_o i_o that_o i_o be_o free_a from_o sin_n and_o in_o this_o many_o do_v marvellous_o flatter_v and_o deceive_v themselves_o some_o that_o be_v indeed_o free_a from_o the_o sin_n itself_o and_o some_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o sin_n please_v themselves_o in_o this_o that_o man_n can_v charge_v they_o no_o further_o then_o with_o appearance_n and_o show_v of_o this_o sin_n and_o what_o care_n they_o for_o that_o but_o mark_v what_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v in_o this_o case_n 1._o thess._n 5._o 22._o abstain_v from_o all_o appearance_n of_o evil_a exod._n 23._o 7._o thou_o shall_v keep_v thou_o far_o from_o a_o false_a matter_n and_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o true_a repentance_n will_v work_v in_o a_o man_n a_o care_n to_o clear_v himself_o from_o the_o sin_n he_o have_v commit_v 2._o cor._n 7._o 11._o and_o whereas_o they_o say_v they_o care_v not_o what_o man_n think_v of_o they_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o that_o care_v not_o what_o man_n special_o good_a man_n think_v of_o he_o have_v no_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n in_o he_o proverbe_n 22._o 1._o a_o good_a name_n be_v to_o be_v choose_v above_o great_a riches_n and_o the_o apostle_n will_v needs_o have_v titus_n and_o two_o other_o choose_v by_o the_o church_n to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o carry_v the_o benevolence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o macedonia_n to_o jerusalem_n because_o he_o be_v careful_a to_o avoid_v all_o suspicion_n of_o deal_v ill_o in_o that_o business_n 2._o cor._n 8._o 20._o avoid_v this_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v blame_v we_o in_o this_o abundance_n that_o be_v minister_v by_o us._n ver._n 21._o provide_v for_o honest_a thing_n not_o only_o before_o the_o lord_n but_o also_o before_o man_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v note_v as_o a_o sign_n of_o extreme_a ungraciousnesse_n in_o the_o unrighteous_a judge_n that_o he_o neither_o fear_v god_n nor_o reverence_a man_n luke_n 18._o 2._o so_o that_o it_o be_v plain_a every_o christian_n shall_v so_o hate_v this_o sin_n as_o to_o shun_v all_o sign_n and_o show_n whereby_o he_o may_v give_v man_n occasion_n to_o suspect_v he_o of_o it_o or_o to_o think_v he_o do_v not_o much_o dislike_n it_o this_o reprove_v five_o sort_n of_o man_n first_o such_o as_o entertain_v familiarity_n with_o such_o as_o be_v infamous_a for_o this_o 1._o sin_n every_o one_o heart_n and_o disposition_n may_v be_v know_v by_o his_o company_n david_n take_v comfort_n in_o this_o as_o a_o special_a note_n of_o the_o uprightness_n and_o innocency_n of_o his_o heart_n that_o he_o have_v not_o haunt_v with_o vain_a person_n nor_o keep_v company_n with_o the_o wicked_a psal._n 26._o 4_o 5._o and_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v make_v a_o sign_n of_o a_o wicked_a man_n psal._n 50._o 18._o to_o be_v partaker_n with_o adulterer_n and_o paul_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o keep_v company_n with_o fornicator_n 1._o cor._n 5._o 9_o there_o be_v some_o man_n so_o infamous_a for_o this_o sin_n that_o there_o be_v none_o how_o honest_a soever_o who_o they_o be_v familiar_a with_o but_o they_o must_v needs_o incur_v a_o blot_n in_o their_o reputation_n by_o they_o let_v none_o such_o comfort_n themselves_o in_o their_o innocency_n for_o if_o they_o do_v fly_v fornication_n and_o hate_v it_o as_o they_o ought_v they_o dare_v not_o seek_v or_o desire_v the_o familiarity_n of_o such_o person_n second_o such_o as_o haunt_v suspect_v house_n solomon_n speak_v of_o such_o a_o one_o pro._n 7._o 8_o 9_o who_o pass_v through_o the_o street_n by_o the_o corner_n where_o the_o 2._o harlot_n dwell_v and_o go_v towards_o her_o house_n in_o the_o twilight_n of_o the_o evening_n when_o the_o night_n begin_v to_o be_v dark_a loe_o he_o haunt_v a_o suspect_a house_n at_o a_o suspicious_a time_n therefore_o he_o call_v he_o a_o fool_n a_o youth_n void_a of_o understanding_n and_o therefore_o he_o give_v every_o one_o counsel_n pro._n 5._o 8._o keep_v thy_o way_n far_o from_o she_o and_o come_v not_o near_o the_o door_n of_o her_o house_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o some_o that_o use_v such_o house_n may_v be_v honest_a they_o may_v have_v other_o intent_n in_o go_v to_o they_o but_o sure_o such_o as_o haunt_v they_o do_v not_o fly_v fornication_n nor_o detest_v this_o sin_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v 3._o such_o as_o use_v light_n and_o immodest_a attire_n and_o set_v out_o of_o their_o beauty_n it_o be_v a_o fond_a and_o profane_a conceit_n to_o think_v it_o matter_v not_o how_o man_n and_o 3._o woman_n go_v attire_v so_o that_o their_o mind_n be_v honest_a for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n command_v all_o special_o woman_n to_o show_v modesty_n and_o shamefastness_n even_o in_o their_o attire_n 1._o timothy_n 2._o 9_o i_o will_v that_o the_o woman_n attire_v themselves_o in_o comely_a apparel_n with_o shamefastness_n and_o modesty_n and_o there_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o attire_n and_o set_v forth_o the_o beauty_n which_o be_v call_v a_o harlot_n attire_n because_o harlot_n first_o devise_v it_o and_o do_v most_o use_v it_o proverb_n 7._o 10._o behold_v there_o meet_v he_o a_o woman_n in_o a_o harlot_n attire_n ornatu_fw-la meritricio_fw-la as_o the_o word_n in_o the_o original_n signify_v and_o all_o the_o best_a interpreter_n read_v it_o and_o to_o this_o the_o lord_n allude_v hosea_n 2._o 2._o let_v she_o take_v away_o her_o fornication_n from_o her_o face_n for_o so_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o her_o adultery_n from_o between_o her_o breast_n how_o can_v there_o be_v fornication_n in_o her_o face_n and_o adultery_n between_o her_o breast_n true_o the_o meaning_n be_v she_o wear_v the_o badge_n and_o cognisance_n of_o that_o sin_n in_o those_o part_n the_o lay_v out_o and_o paint_v of_o the_o breast_n be_v call_v the_o adultery_n of_o the_o breast_n and_o the_o paint_n of_o the_o face_n which_o be_v note_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2._o king_n 9_o 30._o jeremie_n 4._o 30._o to_o have_v be_v the_o practice_n of_o harlot_n be_v call_v the_o fornication_n of_o the_o face_n i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o many_o that_o be_v honest_a use_n this_o now_o a_o day_n yet_o can_v i_o not_o nor_o dare_v i_o excuse_v they_o that_o use_v it_o but_o i_o must_v needs_o say_v that_o though_o they_o sin_v not_o in_o fornication_n yet_o they_o sin_n in_o immodesty_n though_o
they_o seem_v to_o make_v conscience_n of_o this_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n yet_o there_o be_v another_o commandment_n fly_v fornication_n avoid_v all_o appearance_n of_o evil_n which_o they_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o at_o all_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v guilty_a of_o heinous_a sin_n such_o as_o use_v filthy_a talk_n and_o filthy_a song_n it_o be_v strange_a to_o see_v what_o liberty_n many_o even_o some_o that_o in_o many_o thing_n will_v seem_v religious_a will_v pray_v 4._o daily_o and_o hear_v devout_o will_v give_v to_o themselves_o this_o way_n though_o they_o have_v no_o other_o exercise_n of_o their_o wit_n if_o their_o company_n serve_v they_o but_o in_o scurrilous_a jest_n and_o filthy_a communication_n no_o such_o music_n in_o their_o mirth_n as_o amaroas_fw-la and_o filthy_a song_n yet_o if_o they_o can_v say_v they_o be_v honest_a for_o all_o this_o they_o think_v they_o be_v well_o these_o man_n i_o will_v have_v to_o observe_v these_o thing_n 1._o filthy_a word_n whatsoever_o thou_o say_v do_v argue_v a_o filthy_a heart_n matthew_n 15._o 18._o those_o thing_n which_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n come_v from_o the_o heart_n and_o they_o defile_v the_o man_n matthew_n 12._o 34._o from_o the_o abundance_n of_o the_o heart_n the_o mouth_n speak_v yet_o have_v we_o many_o old_a fornicator_n who_o body_n be_v disable_v to_o this_o sin_n that_o have_v yet_o as_o bad_a heart_n as_o ever_o they_o have_v and_o show_v that_o by_o the_o delight_n they_o take_v in_o speak_v filthy_o and_o yet_o silly_a fool_n they_o slatter_v themselves_o in_o this_o that_o they_o have_v leave_v that_o sin_n 2._o say_v thy_o heart_n be_v clean_o that_o be_v not_o enough_o thou_o must_v also_o make_v conscience_n of_o thy_o word_n the_o froward_a mouth_n do_v i_o hate_v say_v the_o lord_n pro._n 8._o 13._o &_o 18._o 21._o death_n and_o life_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o tongue_n matth._n 12._o 37._o by_o thy_o word_n thou_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o by_o thy_o word_n thou_o shall_v be_v condemn_v james_n 1._o 26._o if_o any_o man_n among_o you_o seem_v to_o be_v religious_a and_o bridle_v not_o his_o tongue_n but_o deceive_v his_o own_o heart_n this_o man_n religion_n be_v vain_a ephes._n 4_o 29._o let_v not_o corrupt_v rot_v communication_n come_v out_o of_o your_o mouth_n and_o 5._o 4._o let_v no_o filthiness_n nor_o foolish_a talk_n nor_o jest_v be_v once_o name_v among_o you_o mark_v how_o jest_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v join_v to_o filthy_a talk_n because_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o excuse_v it_o thus_o they_o speak_v in_o jest_n they_o mean_v no_o hurt_n we_o must_v give_v they_o leave_v to_o be_v merry_a such_o speech_n though_o it_o be_v use_v but_o in_o jest_n be_v condemn_v this_o be_v one_o kind_a of_o that_o mirth_n that_o solomon_n speak_v of_o eccl._n 2._o 2._o i_o say_v to_o laughter_n thou_o be_v mad_a pro._n 26._o 18._o 19_o like_o mad_a man_n they_o cast_v about_o they_o firebrand_n and_o deadly_a thing_n and_o say_v they_o be_v in_o sport_n 3._o our_o tongue_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o our_o body_n be_v give_v of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o principal_a instrument_n whereby_o we_o may_v glorify_v god_n therefore_o it_o be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n call_v our_o glory_n psal._n 30._o 12._o therefore_o shall_v my_o glory_n praise_v thou_o and_o not_o cease_v james_n 3._o 9_o therewith_o bless_v we_o god_n that_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o lord_n can_v worst_o endure_v to_o be_v dishonour_v by_o that_o member_n therefore_o dives_fw-la be_v say_v to_o have_v feel_v a_o special_a torment_n in_o his_o tongue_n luke_n 16._o 24._o send_v lazarus_n that_o he_o may_v dip_v the_o tip_n of_o his_o finger_n in_o water_n and_o cool_v my_o tongue_n for_o i_o be_o torment_v in_o this_o flame_n to_o conclude_v pretend_v and_o glory_n never_o so_o much_o of_o thy_o honesty_n certain_a it_o be_v if_o thou_o do_v fly_v fornication_n and_o hate_v it_o as_o thou_o ought_v thou_o dare_v not_o accustom_v thyself_o to_o thy_o filthy_a talk_n such_o as_o delight_v in_o or_o can_v endure_v filthy_a talk_n such_o as_o will_v provoke_v filthy_a person_n to_o speak_v filthy_o such_o as_o will_v call_v to_o the_o musician_n for_o the_o filthy_a 5._o song_n they_o have_v for_o this_o be_v a_o shrewd_a sign_n of_o a_o filthy_a heart_n special_o in_o woman_n because_o modesty_n be_v chief_o require_v of_o that_o sex_n it_o argue_v a_o unclean_a heart_n to_o delight_v in_o the_o lewd_a speech_n of_o other_o pro._n 17._o 4._o a_o wicked_a do●…_n give_v ear_n to_o a_o naughty_a tongue_n 1._o certain_o it_o will_v grieve_v and_o vex_v a_o honest_a heart_n to_o hear_v such_o thing_n ephes._n 4._o 29_o 30._o let_v no_o corrupt_a communication_n come_v out_o of_o your_o mouth_n verse_n 30._o grieve_v not_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n it_o be_v say_v of_o lot_n his_o righteous_a soul_n be_v vex_v with_o hear_v such_o thing_n as_o he_o hear_v in_o sodom_n 2._o pet._n 2._o 8._o 2._o there_o be_v a_o special_a force_n in_o such_o speech_n to_o corrupt_v they_o that_o hear_v it_o 1._o cor._n 15._o 33._o be_v not_o deceive_v evil_a communication_n corrupt_v good_a manner_n 3._o the_o ear_n be_v give_v of_o god_n to_o another_o end_n that_o be_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o to_o be_v sensus_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la that_o sense_n whereby_o knowledge_n shall_v be_v convey_v into_o the_o heart_n he_o that_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v god_n word_n he_o mean_v let_v he_o hear_v say_v our_o saviour_n matth._n 11._o 15._o 4._o a_o good_a man_n shall_v not_o endure_v he_o that_o use_v to_o bring_v lie_n to_o he_o and_o raise_v slander_n psalm_n 101._o 7._o he_o that_o tell_v lie_n shall_v not_o tarry_v in_o my_o sight_n much_o less_o shall_v he_o endure_v they_o that_o talk_v filthy_o 5._o if_o any_o shall_v object_v how_o can_v i_o let_v lewd_a man_n from_o speak_v lewd_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o reprove_v such_o they_o will_v be_v the_o worse_a for_o it_o i_o answer_v that_o if_o honest_a man_n will_v show_v that_o dislike_n as_o they_o may_v they_o will_v not_o be_v much_o trouble_v with_o such_o varlet_n that_o which_o solomon_n say_v in_o another_o case_n pro._n 25._o 23._o a_o angry_a countenance_n drive_v away_o a_o backebiting_a tongue_n will_v hold_v in_o this_o also_o they_o may_v even_o with_o a_o countenance_n restrain_v or_o chase_v they_o away_o and_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v pro._n 20._o 8._o be_v not_o true_a of_o king_n and_o great_a man_n only_a though_o in_o they_o principal_o but_o of_o all_o christian_n they_o may_v scatter_v away_o evil_a and_o lewdness_n even_o with_o their_o eye_n and_o countenance_n lecture_n the_o twenty_o july_n 11._o 1609._o it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o come_v to_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o the_o apostle_n exhortation_n of_o which_o we_o have_v already_o hear_v and_o that_o be_v this_o we_o be_v bind_v out_o of_o a_o holy_a fear_n lest_o we_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n fall_v into_o this_o sin_n and_o out_o of_o that_o detestation_n we_o shall_v bear_v unto_o it_o to_o shun_v all_o occasion_n and_o provocation_n that_o may_v draw_v we_o to_o it_o and_o to_o use_v all_o good_a mean_n that_o may_v be_v to_o preserve_v we_o from_o it_o true_a it_o be_v that_o it_o be_v god_n only_o that_o preserve_v any_o of_o we_o from_o this_o or_o any_o other_o sin_n psalm_n 18._o 35._o thy_o right_a hand_n have_v stay_v i_o and_o 56._o 13._o thou_o have_v keep_v my_o foot_n from_o fall_v but_o the_o mean_n whereby_o he_o do_v it_o be_v by_o work_v in_o we_o a_o fear_n of_o fall_v which_o make_v we_o careful_o to_o shun_v tentation_n see_v how_o this_o fear_n be_v commend_v to_o we_o in_o god_n word_n as_o a_o wise_a man_n fear_v and_o depart_v from_o evil_a pro._n 14._o 16._o and_o bless_v be_v the_o man_n that_o fear_v always_o pro._n 28._o 14._o and_o work_v out_o your_o own_o salvation_n with_o fear_n and_o tremble_a phil._n 2._o 12._o 2._o a_o endeavour_n to_o use_v all_o mean_n that_o may_v preserve_v and_o strengthen_v we_o from_o fall_v i_o keep_v myself_o say_v david_n psal._n 18._o 23._o from_o my_o iniquity_n and_o 1._o john_n 5._o 18._o he_o that_o be_v beget_v of_o god_n keep_v himself_o and_o that_o wicked_a one_o touch_v he_o not_o there_o be_v none_o so_o strong_a or_o full_a of_o grace_n but_o he_o may_v fall_v into_o the_o most_o fearful_a sin_n that_o be_v if_o he_o be_v not_o careful_a to_o shun_v temptation_n and_o to_o use_v the_o mean_n god_n have_v appoint_v to_o preserve_v he_o from_o sin_n therefore_o christ_n charge_v his_o disciple_n both_o to_o watch_v and_o to_o pray_v against_o
describe_v unclean_a person_n say_v they_o have_v eye_n full_a of_o adultery_n and_o that_o can_v not_o cease_v to_o sin_n 2._o pet._n 2._o 14._o he_o that_o have_v a_o unclean_a eye_n that_o give_v liberty_n to_o his_o wanton_a eye_n can_v cease_v to_o sin_n and_o solomon_n make_v it_o a_o chief_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o outrageous_a lust_n of_o youth_n that_o they_o walk_v after_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o eye_n eccl._n 11._o 9_o and_o it_o be_v note_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o behold_v of_o herodias_n daughter_n when_o she_o dance_v do_v so_o strong_o inchant_v and_o bewitch_v the_o unclean_a heart_n of_o incestuous_a herod_n that_o like_o a_o madman_n he_o have_v she_o ask_v what_o she_o will_v and_o he_o will_v give_v it_o she_o and_o not_o content_v himself_o so_o he_o do_v swear_v to_o she_o that_o whatsoever_o she_o shall_v ask_v he_o will_v give_v it_o she_o even_o to_o the_o half_a of_o his_o kingdom_n mar._n 6._o 22._o i_o will_v not_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o say_v that_o all_o dance_n be_v unlawful_a but_o this_o i_o will_v bold_o say_v that_o that_o kind_a of_o dance_v that_o be_v now_o in_o use_n be_v now_o and_o ever_o have_v be_v a_o strong_a provocation_n to_o this_o sin_n if_o i_o shall_v relate_v unto_o you_o what_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v speak_v and_o write_v of_o it_o you_o will_v not_o think_v as_o many_o of_o you_o be_v apt_a to_o do_v that_o none_o but_o foolish_a precisian_n do_v mislike_v it_o but_o you_o will_v rather_o wonder_v as_o i_o myself_o have_v oft_o do_v to_o see_v many_o divine_n who_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o great_a admirer_n of_o the_o father_n who_o be_v indeed_o holy_a and_o reverend_a man_n worthy_a for_o their_o piety_n and_o learning_n of_o great_a esteem_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n show_v so_o little_a zeal_n and_o detestation_n against_o this_o heathenish_a custom_n to_o conclude_v this_o point_n we_o read_v of_o job_n that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o danger_n that_o he_o know_v be_v in_o the_o eye_n to_o corrupt_v the_o heart_n he_o make_v a_o covenant_n with_o his_o eye_n and_o bind_v it_o to_o the_o good_a behaviour_n job_n 31._o 1._o let_v he_o that_o be_v sure_a he_o have_v more_o strength_n of_o grace_n in_o he_o then_o job_n have_v give_v liberty_n to_o his_o eye_n to_o read_v what_o he_o list_v and_o behold_v what_o he_o list_v but_o if_o he_o have_v no_o more_o strength_n than_o job_n have_v let_v he_o take_v heed_n how_o he_o do_v it_o 3._o he_o that_o will_v keep_v himself_o from_o this_o sin_n must_v make_v conscience_n of_o and_o restrain_v his_o thought_n he_o may_v not_o take_v pleasure_n in_o nor_o seek_v to_o nourish_v unclean_a thought_n in_o his_o heart_n when_o job_n have_v say_v he_o have_v make_v a_o covenant_n with_o his_o eye_n he_o add_v why_o then_o shall_v i_o think_v of_o a_o maid_n why_o shall_v i_o give_v liberty_n to_o such_o thought_n job_n 31._o 1._o for_o 1._o all_o uncleanness_n begin_v there_o matth._n 15._o 18_o 19_o those_o thing_n that_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o man_n come_v from_o the_o heart_n and_o they_o defile_v a_o man_n for_o out_o of_o the_o heart_n come_v evil_a thought_n murder_n adultery_n fornication_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o when_o solomon_n will_v give_v a_o preseruative_n against_o this_o sin_n he_o say_v pro._n 6._o 25._o desire_v not_o her_o beauty_n in_o thy_o heart_n 2._o no_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a he_o shall_v stay_v himself_o there_o but_o from_o his_o mental_a and_o contemplative_a fornication_n he_o will_v be_v in_o great_a danger_n to_o fall_v unto_o that_o which_o be_v actual_a jam._n 1._o 15._o lust_n when_o it_o have_v conceive_v bring_v forth_o sin_n pro._n 14._o 22._o do_v not_o they_o err_v that_o imagine_v evil_a 3._o if_o a_o man_n can_v stay_v himself_o there_o though_o among_o man_n he_o may_v be_v esteem_v honest_a yet_o god_n count_v he_o a_o filthy_a wretch_n he_o see_v and_o abhor_v and_o judge_v these_o unclean_a thought_n and_o lust_n of_o the_o heart_n pro._n 15._o 26._o the_o thought_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v abominable_a to_o the_o lord_n and_o matth._n 5._o 28._o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o whosoever_o look_v on_o a_o woman_n and_o lust_v after_o she_o have_v commit_v adultery_n with_o she_o already_o in_o his_o heart_n 4._o he_o that_o will_v keep_v himself_o from_o uncleanness_n must_v use_v the_o comfort_n of_o this_o life_n meat_n and_o drink_v i_o mean_v sober_o and_o moderate_o and_o not_o pamper_v the_o flesh_n too_o much_o among_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o sodomite_n beastly_a lust_n fullness_n of_o bread_n be_v name_v ezek._n 16._o 49._o and_o when_o solomon_n have_v say_v woe_n to_o they_o that_o tarry_v long_o at_o the_o wine_n to_o they_o that_o go_v and_o seek_v mixtwine_v no_o drink_n be_v strong_a enough_o for_o they_o prou._n 23._o 30._o he_o give_v this_o for_o a_o reason_n verse_n 33._o thy_o eye_n shall_v look_v upon_o strange_a woman_n though_o thou_o have_v a_o wife_n of_o thy_o own_o and_o thy_o heart_n shall_v speak_v lewd_a thing_n true_a it_o be_v that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o liberty_n to_o use_v his_o good_a creature_n not_o only_o for_o our_o necessity_n but_o liberal_o and_o for_o our_o delight_n also_o the_o lord_n allow_v and_o command_v his_o people_n three_o time_n of_o the_o year_n in_o public_a profession_n of_o their_o thankfulness_n for_o certain_a excellent_a and_o public_a benefit_n he_o have_v bestow_v on_o they_o to_o meet_v together_o and_o at_o such_o meeting_n to_o keep_v a_o feast_n seven_o day_n together_o deut._n 16._o 15._o and_o in_o this_o feast_n they_o may_v eat_v of_o the_o best_a and_o drink_v of_o the_o best_a and_o please_v their_o appetite_n deut._n 14._o 26._o thou_o shall_v bestow_v thy_o money_n for_o whatsoever_o thy_o heart_n desire_v whether_o it_o be_v ox_n or_o sheep_n or_o wine_n or_o strong_a drink_n or_o whatsoever_o thy_o heart_n desire_v and_o though_o christ_n friend_n that_o be_v marry_v in_o cana_n be_v not_o very_o rich_a yet_o have_v they_o a_o feast_n at_o their_o wedding_n and_o wine_n and_o such_o like_a extraordinary_a fare_n yea_o our_o saviour_n be_v not_o only_o present_a at_o the_o feast_n but_o miraculous_o provide_v they_o great_a plenty_n of_o wine_n and_o though_o the_o feast_n be_v almost_o do_v and_o they_o have_v drink_v well_o before_o john_n 2._o 6._o 10._o but_o though_o this_o be_v so_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o lawful_a for_o any_o man_n to_o use_v these_o creature_n of_o god_n so_o liberal_o every_o day_n the_o apostle_n say_v they_o be_v as_o bruit_v beast_n lead_v with_o sensuality_n and_o make_v to_o be_v take_v and_o destroy_v that_o count_v it_o a_o pleasure_n to_o live_v delicious_o every_o day_n so_o it_o be_v to_o be_v translate_v 2._o pet._n 2._o 12_o 13._o and_o our_o saviour_n note_v it_o to_o the_o shame_n of_o dives_fw-la though_o he_o be_v a_o rich_a man_n that_o he_o fare_v well_o and_o delicate_o every_o day_n luke_n 16._o 19_o and_o eccl._n 10._o 17._o bless_a be_v thou_o o_o lord_n when_o thy_o prince_n eat_v in_o time_n for_o strength_n and_o not_o for_o drunkenness_n and_o it_o be_v note_v matth._n 24._o 28._o as_o a_o sin_n in_o the_o old_a world_n that_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d give_v to_o eat_v now_o if_o this_o be_v unlawful_a for_o any_o then_o much_o more_o for_o such_o who_o calling_n and_o condition_n bind_v they_o to_o lead_v a_o single_a life_n if_o such_o give_v themselves_o to_o such_o excess_n and_o their_o ordinary_a diet_n will_v not_o content_v they_o though_o it_o be_v good_a and_o plentiful_a but_o they_o must_v go_v every_o day_n to_o the_o tavern_n or_o to_o the_o alehouse_n these_o man_n proclaim_v to_o the_o world_n that_o they_o fear_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o conclude_v this_o point_n mark_v what_o the_o apostle_n james_n say_v of_o these_o man_n james_n 5._o 5._o you_o have_v live_v in_o pleasure_n and_o in_o wantonness_n but_o how_o prove_v he_o they_o wantoness_n you_o have_v nourish_v your_o heart_n as_o in_o a_o day_n of_o sacrifice_n or_o feast_n they_o that_o keep_v feast_n so_o oft_o must_v needs_o be_v wanton_n 5._o he_o that_o will_v keep_v himself_o from_o uncleanness_n must_v take_v heed_n of_o idleness_n and_o sluggishness_n among_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o sodomite_n sin_n this_o be_v reckon_v by_o the_o prophet_n for_o one_o ezek._n 16._o 49._o yea_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v of_o these_o as_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o david_n fall_n he_o grow_v idle_a and_o neglect_v his_o call_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o year_n when_o prince_n go_v forth_o to_o battle_n he_o send_v joab_n and_o tarry_v at_o home_n himself_o 2._o sam._n 11._o 2._o and_o
such_o a_o one_o as_o he_o can_v find_v in_o his_o heart_n to_o love_n and_o delight_n in_o above_o any_o other_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v himself_o cha●…t_o rejoice_v with_o the_o wife_n of_o thy_o youth_n let_v she_o be_v as_o the_o love_a hind_n and_o pleasant_a roe_n let_v her_o breast_n satisfy_v thou_o at_o all_o time_n and_o be_v thou_o ravish_v always_o with_o her_o love_n and_o why_o will_v thou_o my_o son_n be_v ravish_v with_o a_o strange_a woman_n and_o embrace_v the_o b●…some_a of_o a_o stranger_n say_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n you_o see_v it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o have_v of_o a_o wife_n as_o the_o have_v of_o she_o and_o delight_v in_o she_o that_o be_v the_o mean_n that_o god_n have_v sanctify_v to_o preserve_v a_o man_n from_o whoredom_n pro._n 5._o 18_o 19_o 20._o and_o that_o be_v the_o chief_a cause_n why_o the_o popish_a clergy_n through_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n do_v so_o abound_v in_o all_o unnatural_a uncleanness_n because_o they_o do_v not_o only_o forbear_v marriage_n but_o bind_v themselves_o by_o vow_n against_o it_o and_o condemn_v it_o in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o both_o think_v and_o speak_v dishonourable_o of_o it_o lecture_n the_o one_o and_o twenty_o august_n 8._o 1609._o we_o have_v oft_o hear_v that_o these_o word_n from_o the_o 16._o verse_n to_o the_o 18._o do_v offer_n unto_o our_o consideration_n four_o principal_a point_n 1._o that_o our_o saviour_n thirst_v after_o the_o salvation_n of_o this_o poor_a woman_n discover_v unto_o she_o her_o sin_n and_o nothing_o he_o have_v say_v before_o to_o she_o can_v work_v upon_o her_o conscience_n till_o he_o take_v this_o course_n with_o she_o 2._o that_o the_o sin_n he_o discover_v to_o she_o be_v a_o secret_a sin_n unknown_a to_o all_o man_n 3._o that_o among_o all_o the_o secret_a or_o open_a sin_n which_o he_o know_v by_o she_o when_o he_o will_v touch_v and_o awaken_v her_o conscience_n he_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o fornication_n she_o live_v in_o and_o charge_v she_o only_o with_o that_o 4._o that_o though_o he_o know_v she_o live_v in_o so_o heinous_a a_o sin_n he_o reject_v she_o not_o for_o all_o that_o the_o three_o first_o point_n we_o have_v already_o speak_v of_o it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o come_v to_o the_o last_o though_o he_o know_v she_o live_v in_o so_o heinous_a a_o sin_n he_o reject_v she_o not_o for_o it_o from_o whence_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o receive_v that_o comfortable_a instruction_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n intend_v to_o give_v we_o in_o this_o example_n let_v we_o consider_v 1._o what_o a_o manner_n of_o person_n this_o woman_n be_v 2._o the_o gracious_a respect_n christ_n have_v unto_o she_o she_o be_v 1._o a_o idolater_n and_o what_o sin_n be_v more_o odious_a to_o god_n then_o idolatry_n 2._o she_o be_v a_o idolater_n of_o that_o nation_n which_o of_o all_o other_o be_v most_o odious_a to_o god_n people_n among_o they_o it_o be_v the_o most_o odious_a term_n of_o reproach_n to_o call_v one_o a_o samaritan_n john_n 8._o 48._o 3._o she_o be_v a_o filthy_a harlot_n and_o yet_o see_v how_o christ_n respect_v she_o 1._o he_o seek_v her_o conversion_n 2._o he_o bear_v with_o her_o blockishness_n and_o frowardness_n in_o reject_v that_o offer_n of_o grace_n he_o make_v unto_o she_o and_o give_v she_o not_o over_o for_o that_o 3._o when_o he_o see_v there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o do_v her_o good_a but_o by_o charge_v her_o conscience_n with_o the_o sin_n she_o live_v in_o he_o do_v it_o most_o gentle_o and_o love_o for_o fear_v of_o discourage_v of_o she_o he_o call_v she_o not_o harlot_n but_o only_o intimate_v to_o she_o that_o he_o know_v how_o she_o live_v and_o that_o in_o most_o secret_a manner_n also_o while_o his_o disciple_n be_v away_o and_o no_o body_n by_o but_o they_o two_o only_o now_o than_o the_o doctrine_n that_o we_o learn_v from_o hence_o be_v this_o that_o the_o sin_n of_o god_n elect_n how_o many_o or_o how_o heinous_a soever_o they_o be_v can_v hinder_v their_o salvation_n nor_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n after_o 4._o they_o once_o repent_v of_o they_o before_o i_o confirm_v this_o unto_o you_o three_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v promise_v to_o prevent_v the_o mistake_n of_o this_o doctrine_n 1._o it_o be_v certain_a god_n hate_v all_o sin_n in_o all_o man_n as_o well_o in_o the_o elect_n as_o in_o the_o reprobate_n with_o a_o perfect_a and_o infinite_a hatred_n above_o that_o that_o any_o tongue_n can_v express_v or_o heart_n conceive_v of_o hab._n 1._o 13._o thou_o be_v of_o pure_a eye_n and_o can_v not_o see_v evil_a thou_o can_v not_o behold_v wickedness_n 2._o if_o any_o of_o god_n own_o people_n fall_v into_o gross_a and_o scandalous_a sin_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o correct_v and_o scourge_v they_o shape_o for_o they_o david_n may_v be_v a_o example_n of_o this_o 2._o sam._n 12._o 10_o 11._o 3._o he_o be_v wont_a to_o bear_v less_o with_o his_o own_o people_n in_o this_o life_n than_o he_o do_v with_o the_o wicked_a and_o to_o correct_v they_o for_o such_o small_a fault_n as_o he_o use_v to_o pass_v over_o in_o the_o ungodly_a amos_n 3._o 2._o you_o only_o have_v i_o know_v of_o all_o the_o family_n of_o the_o earth_n therefore_o will_v i_o visit_v you_o for_o all_o your_o iniquity_n moses_n do_v but_o omit_v and_o delay_v the_o circumcision_n of_o his_o child_n and_o the_o lord_n meet_v he_o and_o will_v have_v slay_v he_o for_o it_o exod._n 4._o 24._o yet_o can_v no_o sin_n of_o god_n elect_a how_o heinous_a soever_o cause_n god_n to_o hate_v or_o reject_v they_o though_o he_o hate_v sin_n in_o they_o he_o can_v hate_v they_o for_o sin_n though_o he_o correct_v and_o scourge_v they_o for_o sin_n yet_o he_o can_v hate_v they_o for_o sin_n but_o notwithstanding_o their_o sin_n be_v never_o so_o many_o never_o so_o heinous_a he_o love_v they_o never_o the_o less_o with_o the_o love_n of_o a_o father_n with_o a_o most_o tender_a and_o unspeakable_a love_n the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n may_v appear_v unto_o we_o in_o four_o principal_a point_n 2._o he_o be_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o unwilling_a to_o offer_v his_o grace_n unto_o they_o and_o to_o seek_v their_o conversion_n for_o any_o heinous_a sin_n they_o live_v in_o before_o their_o call_n 2._o he_o think_v never_o a_o whit_n the_o worse_a of_o they_o for_o that_o they_o have_v be_v or_o for_o any_o sin_n they_o have_v live_v in_o before_o their_o conversion_n after_o once_o they_o have_v repent_v of_o they_o 3._o he_o like_v never_o the_o worse_o of_o the_o good_a work_n do_v by_o they_o after_o their_o conversion_n because_o of_o the_o corruption_n that_o be_v mingle_v with_o they_o 4._o he_o make_v their_o very_a sin_n turn_v to_o their_o good_a and_o to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o their_o salvation_n of_o these_o four_o point_n i_o will_v speak_v in_o order_n as_o brief_o as_o i_o can_v for_o the_o first_o man_n reason_n can_v conceive_v cause_n why_o god_n shall_v have_v some_o 1._o respect_n unto_o we_o after_o our_o conversion_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v regard_v we_o so_o far_o as_o to_o seek_v our_o salvation_n with_o such_o endeavour_n care_n and_o patience_n when_o we_o be_v utter_o without_o grace_n child_n of_o wrath_n enemy_n to_o all_o goodness_n special_o so_o notorious_a sinner_n as_o many_o of_o we_o be_v this_o argue_v a_o special_a and_o wonderful_a love_n indeed_o and_o yet_o so_o he_o do_v what_o a_o one_o be_v paul_n one_o that_o breathe_v out_o threaten_n and_o slaughter_n against_o the_o disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n act_n 9_o 1._o one_o that_o be_v not_o a_o blasphemer_n and_o threatener_n himself_o and_o injurious_a that_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o care_v not_o what_o wrong_n he_o do_v the_o faithful_a though_o he_o have_v no_o colour_n of_o right_n or_o law_n for_o that_o he_o do_v against_o they_o 1._o tim._n 1._o 13._o but_o one_o that_o do_v also_o counsel_v other_o to_o blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n against_o their_o own_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n act_n 26._o 11._o and_o what_o be_v those_o who_o christ_n show_v most_o kindness_n unto_o most_o care_n to_o win_v sure_o the_o most_o notorious_a and_o infamous_a sinner_n that_o live_v in_o the_o world_n see_v this_o here_o in_o the_o example_n of_o this_o woman_n see_v it_o also_o in_o another_o woman_n a_o infamous_a and_o notorious_a sinner_n luke_n 7._o 39_o see_v it_o matth._n 9_o 10._o many_o publican_n and_o sinner_n come_v and_o sit_v down_o with_o he_o at_o matthewes_n feast_n insomuch_o as_o lewd_a hypocrite_n take_v great_a offence_n at_o this_o matth._n 9_o 11._o &_o 11._o 19_o luk._n 7._o 39_o &_o 15._o
that_o we_o may_v true_o say_v that_o though_o we_o ourselves_o be_v bind_v to_o account_v the_o corruption_n that_o remain_v in_o we_o a_o intolerable_a burden_n which_o we_o must_v be_v continual_o humble_v for_o and_o groan_n under_o and_o strive_v to_o lessen_v and_o desire_v to_o be_v ease_v of_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v rom._n 7._o 24._o because_o our_o most_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a father_n be_v grieve_v and_o offend_v by_o it_o and_o because_o it_o be_v ever_o bud_v and_o bring_v forth_o in_o we_o such_o fruit_n as_o be_v most_o bitter_a unto_o we_o and_o breed_v we_o much_o woe_n yet_o the_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o power_n and_o goodness_n of_o our_o god_n make_v this_o a_o great_a benefit_n to_o we_o that_o we_o be_v not_o in_o this_o life_n perfect_o regenerate_v but_o that_o the_o lord_n suffer_v sin_n to_o dwell_v in_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o abide_v in_o this_o tabernacle_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v demand_v of_o i_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o doctrine_n the_o cause_n reason_n why_o the_o lord_n shall_v thus_o love_v his_o elect_n and_o be_v so_o partial_a towards_o they_o that_o though_o he_o hate_v sin_n in_o all_o and_o hate_v the_o reprobate_n and_o damn_v they_o for_o their_o sin_n yet_o he_o hate_v not_o his_o elect_n for_o their_o sin_n but_o love_v they_o even_o before_o there_o be_v any_o grace_n in_o they_o at_o all_o even_o before_o they_o have_v repent_v of_o their_o sin_n i_o can_v give_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o it_o but_o his_o own_o good_a will_n and_o pleasure_n only_o he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v have_v merry_a say_v the_o apostle_n rom._n 9_o 18._o and_o ephes._n 1._o 11._o he_o work_v all_o thing_n after_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n and_o in_o this_o it_o become_v every_o mortal_a man_n to_o rest_v without_o inquiry_n any_o further_a and_o to_o say_v with_o the_o holy_a apostle_n rom._n 9_o 21_o 22._o have_v not_o the_o potter_n power_n over_o the_o clay_n what_o if_o god_n will_v do_v thus_o 2._o the_o respect_n god_n have_v to_o the_o son_n of_o his_o love_n to_o who_o he_o give_v they_o before_o the_o world_n be_v he_o have_v choose_v we_o in_o he_o say_v the_o apostle_n ephes._n 1._o 4._o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o verse_n 6._o he_o have_v make_v we_o accept_v in_o his_o belove_a now_o of_o this_o doctrine_n i_o may_v say_v as_o the_o prophet_n do_v in_o another_o case_n isaiah_n 28._o 9_o to_o who_o shall_v we_o teach_v this_o doctrine_n who_o be_v fit_a to_o hear_v and_o use_v receive_v it_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o some_o that_o stumble_v at_o the_o word_n 1._o pet._n 2._o 8._o and_o such_o there_o have_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o word_n no_o truth_n of_o god_n that_o so_o many_o do_v stumble_v at_o as_o at_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o infinite_a mercy_n of_o god_n unto_o sinner_n for_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v a_o man_n almost_o that_o do_v not_o abuse_v this_o doctrine_n to_o the_o encourage_v of_o himself_o to_o sin_n and_o to_o the_o harden_v of_o his_o heart_n against_o all_o check_n of_o conscience_n for_o sin_n yet_o must_v this_o doctrine_n so_o clear_o and_o plentiful_o deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o tend_v so_o much_o to_o the_o comfort_n of_o god_n people_n be_v teach_v though_o there_o be_v never_o so_o many_o wicked_a man_n that_o will_v take_v hurt_v by_o it_o the_o child_n bread_n must_v not_o be_v keep_v from_o they_o because_o of_o the_o dog_n that_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o snatch_v it_o out_o of_o our_o hand_n when_o we_o break_v it_o to_o they_o yet_o before_o i_o give_v the_o child_n their_o bread_n and_o apply_v this_o doctrine_n to_o they_o unto_o who_o it_o only_o belong_v i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o drive_v away_o the_o dog_n by_o show_v that_o the_o profane_a and_o impenitent_a sinner_n that_o turn_v god_n grace_n into_o wantonness_n and_o encourage_v himself_o to_o sin_n by_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n mercy_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o this_o doctrine_n nor_o any_o cause_n at_o all_o to_o take_v comfort_n in_o it_o for_o 1._o all_o this_o that_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n mercy_n belong_v only_o to_o the_o elect_n which_o be_v therefore_o call_v uessel_n of_o mercy_n not_o to_o the_o reprobate_n 1._o which_o be_v call_v vessel_n of_o wrath_n rom._n 9_o 22._o 23._o if_o thou_o say_v i_o may_v be_v one_o of_o god_n elect_v too_o i_o answer_v thou_o may_v indeed_o but_o till_o thou_o know_v thyself_o to_o be_v so_o and_o can_v find_v the_o mark_n of_o election_n in_o thyself_o thou_o can_v take_v no_o comfort_n in_o this_o doctrine_n therefore_o every_o where_o in_o scripture_n this_o mercy_n of_o god_n be_v restrain_v to_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o the_o scripture_n every_o where_o teach_v that_o none_o else_o have_v cause_n to_o glory_n in_o it_o or_o trust_v to_o it_o psal._n 118._o 4._o let_v they_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n now_o say_v that_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o and_o 115._o 11._o you_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n trust_v in_o the_o lord_n 2._o this_o be_v note_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v a_o fearful_a sign_n of_o reprobation_n and_o that_o thou_o shall_v never_o taste_v of_o god_n mercy_n because_o thou_o stumble_v and_o 2._o take_v occasion_n of_o be_v more_o wicked_a even_o from_o the_o pure_a and_o holy_a word_n of_o god_n and_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o mercy_n 1._o pet._n 2._o 8._o 3._o this_o god_n who_o mercy_n thou_o so_o much_o glory_a in_o and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o who_o mercy_n thou_o do_v so_o much_o abuse_v and_o christ_n jesus_n through_o who_o 3._o thou_o trust_v to_o find_v he_o so_o merciful_a will_v appear_v unto_o thou_o one_o day_n so_o terrible_a as_o thou_o shall_v cry_v to_o the_o hill_n and_o rock_n to_o fall_v upon_o thou_o to_o hide_v thou_o from_o his_o presence_n apoc._n 6._o 15_o 16._o yea_o this_o shall_v increase_v thy_o horror_n at_o that_o day_n that_o thou_o have_v sin_v against_o so_o merciful_a a_o god_n and_o when_o thou_o shall_v discern_v that_o he_o that_o be_v so_o infinite_a in_o mercy_n towards_o other_o yea_o happy_o towards_o such_o as_o be_v more_o notorious_a sinner_n than_o thyself_o have_v no_o mercy_n for_o thou_o at_o all_o luk._n 13._o 28._o there_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n when_o you_o shall_v see_v abraham_n and_o isaac_n and_o jacob_n and_o all_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o you_o yourselves_o thrust_v out_o but_o to_o let_v they_o pass_v and_o to_o apply_v this_o doctrine_n to_o such_o as_o to_o who_o indeed_o it_o only_o belong_v first_o it_o serve_v for_o the_o unspeakable_a comfort_n of_o all_o such_o as_o can_v find_v in_o themselves_o the_o assure_a token_n that_o they_o be_v the_o elect_a of_o god_n and_o indeed_o 1._o this_o doctrine_n be_v to_o such_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o true_a comfort_n if_o thy_o sin_n can_v hurt_v thou_o nothing_o can_v hurt_v thou_o neither_o prosperity_n nor_o adversity_n life_n nor_o death_n the_o world_n nor_o the_o devil_n for_o as_o sin_n be_v the_o sting_n of_o death_n 1._o cor._n 15._o 56._o so_o be_v it_o of_o every_o other_o thing_n that_o thou_o have_v cause_n to_o fear_v now_o if_o thou_o be_v god_n elect_n thou_o may_v be_v thus_o secure_a that_o though_o thy_o sin_n may_v make_v thou_o subject_a to_o many_o a_o correction_n and_o scourge_n in_o this_o life_n yet_o shall_v they_o never_o be_v able_a to_o separate_v thou_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o hinder_v thy_o eternal_a happiness_n every_o man_n therefore_o that_o desire_v to_o enjoy_v this_o comfort_n must_v labour_v to_o make_v his_o election_n certain_a to_o himself_o and_o that_o shall_v he_o do_v by_o make_v his_o effectual_a call_n certain_a to_o himself_o 2._o pet._n 1._o 10._o and_o this_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o a_o effectual_a call_n when_o he_o find_v that_o through_o god_n grace_n he_o be_v able_a unfeigned_o to_o repent_v of_o all_o his_o sin_n that_o be_v so_o to_o grieve_v for_o offend_a god_n by_o they_o that_o he_o can_v hate_v and_o forsake_v they_o for_o this_o grace_n of_o unfeigned_a repentance_n be_v give_v to_o none_o but_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n the_o elect_a of_o god_n act_v 5._o 31._o and_o the_o depart_n from_o iniquity_n be_v make_v a_o certain_a note_n of_o election_n 2._o timothy_n 2._o 19_o so_o that_o if_o thou_o find_v thyself_o able_a through_o god_n grace_n to_o repent_v of_o thy_o sin_n there_o be_v no_o cause_n thou_o shall_v fear_v damnation_n for_o thy_o sin_n or_o the_o loss_n of_o god_n favour_n for_o if_o
notwithstanding_o the_o gross_a sin_n thou_o live_v in_o before_o thy_o call_n when_o there_o be_v in_o thou_o no_o grace_n at_o all_o nor_o love_n to_o god_n he_o then_o love_v thou_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o to_o give_v thou_o his_o word_n to_o offer_v his_o son_n to_o thou_o to_o give_v thou_o his_o spirit_n how_o can_v thou_o doubt_v but_o he_o will_v much_o more_o love_v thou_o and_o not_o cast_v thou_o off_o for_o thy_o sin_n now_o he_o have_v give_v thou_o a_o heart_n to_o love_n and_o fear_v his_o name_n second_o this_o doctrine_n serve_v for_o our_o instruction_n and_o imitation_n that_o profess_v ourselves_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n we_o shall_v be_v follower_n of_o god_n 2._o in_o this_o as_o dear_a child_n ephes._n 5._o 1._o 1._o as_o the_o heinous_a sin_n of_o his_o elect_n do_v not_o hinder_v god_n from_o seek_v their_o call_n and_o conversion_n so_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v discourage_v from_o endeavour_v with_o all_o long_a sufferance_n by_o all_o mean_n especial_o by_o prayer_n unto_o god_n the_o conversion_n of_o such_o as_o be_v yet_o without_o grace_n be_v they_o never_o so_o wicked_a special_o such_o of_o they_o as_o god_n have_v tie_v we_o unto_o by_o any_o special_a bond_n when_o the_o apostle_n have_v charge_v timothy_n to_o take_v principal_a care_n of_o this_o that_o in_o the_o church_n assembly_n prayer_n of_o all_o sort_n may_v be_v make_v for_o king_n and_o all_o in_o authority_n whereof_o at_o that_o time_n there_o few_o or_o none_o that_o profess_a or_o favour_v the_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 2._o 1_o 2._o he_o tell_v he_o vers_n 3._o that_o this_o be_v good_a and_o acceptable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n and_o give_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o vers_n 4._o because_o he_o will_v have_v all_o man_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n some_o to_o be_v save_v and_o to_o come_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o 2._o tim._n 2._o 24_o 25._o he_o say_v the_o servant_n and_o minister_v of_o the_o lord_n must_v be_v gentle_a unto_o all_o man_n apt_a to_o teach_v patient_a instruct_v with_o meekness_n even_o they_o that_o oppose_v themselves_o and_o tit._n 3._o 2_o 3._o he_o require_v of_o all_o the_o faithful_a that_o in_o their_o whole_a conversation_n they_o show_v all_o meekness_n to_o all_o man_n consider_v how_o bad_a themselves_o even_o the_o best_a of_o they_o be_v before_o their_o conversion_n 2._o as_o the_o lord_n love_v no_o man_n the_o worse_a for_o that_o he_o have_v be_v after_o once_o he_o have_v unfeigned_o repent_v no_o more_o shall_v we_o see_v this_o in_o the_o apostle_n charge_v concern_v the_o incestuous_a person_n you_o ought_v say_v he_o to_o forgive_v he_o and_o comfort_v he_o lest_o peradventure_o such_o a_o one_o shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o with_o overmuch_o sorrow_n wherefore_o i_o beseech_v you_o that_o you_o will_v confirm_v your_o love_n towards_o he_o 2._o cor._n 2._o 7_o 8._o 3._o as_o the_o infirmity_n of_o god_n child_n do_v not_o cause_v the_o lord_n to_o despise_v they_o or_o dislike_v their_o good_a work_n no_o more_o shall_v the_o infirmity_n we_o discern_v in_o they_o that_o fear_n god_n cause_v we_o to_o despise_v they_o or_o minish_v that_o reverence_n and_o love_n that_o we_o owe_v unto_o they_o despise_v not_o any_o of_o christ_n little_a one_o matth._n 18._o 10._o honour_n all_o that_o fear_n god_n psal._n 15._o 4._o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o lecture_n on_o august_n xv._n mdcix_o joh._n four_o xix_o xx._n the_o woman_n say_v unto_o he_o sir_n i_o perceive_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o prophet_n our_o father_n worship_v in_o this_o mountain_n and_o you_o say_v that_o in_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o place_n where_o man_n ought_v to_o worship_v we_o have_v hear_v that_o in_o the_o former_a verse_n our_o saviour_n seek_v the_o conversion_n of_o this_o poor_a woman_n and_o find_v she_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o understand_v what_o he_o have_v say_v unto_o she_o in_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n which_o he_o have_v to_o bestow_v upon_o she_o discover_v to_o her_o the_o secret_a whoredom_n that_o she_o live_v in_o now_o in_o these_o word_n the_o evangelist_n set_v down_o the_o effect_n which_o this_o reproof_n do_v take_v in_o her_o heart_n and_o how_o the_o grace_n of_o true_a conversion_n do_v now_o begin_v to_o work_v and_o show_v itself_o in_o she_o and_o this_o he_o note_v in_o three_o singular_a effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o grace_n that_o do_v appear_v in_o she_o first_o she_o deny_v not_o nor_o excuse_v or_o extenuate_v the_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v charge_v she_o with_o though_o she_o may_v well_o think_v he_o be_v never_o able_a either_o by_o witness_n or_o presumption_n to_o convince_v she_o of_o it_o second_o neither_o do_v she_o like_v ever_o the_o worse_a of_o he_o for_o deal_v thus_o with_o she_o though_o if_o she_o have_v have_v in_o she_o no_o better_o a_o spirit_n than_o she_o have_v at_o the_o first_o she_o will_v have_v scorn_v and_o defy_v he_o that_o he_o be_v so_o mean_v a_o person_n as_o his_o habit_n do_v give_v he_o to_o be_v shall_v thus_o control_v she_o she_o will_v have_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o speak_v this_o but_o out_o of_o a_o malicious_a and_o hard_a conceit_n that_o he_o have_v either_o against_o her_o nation_n because_o she_o be_v a_o samaritan_n or_o against_o her_o person_n because_o she_o have_v deny_v he_o water_n this_o i_o say_v she_o have_v be_v likely_a to_o have_v do_v if_o she_o have_v have_v nothing_o but_o nature_n in_o she_o but_o she_o do_v not_o so_o but_o out_o of_o a_o tender_a conscience_n which_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n have_v wrought_v in_o she_o she_o free_o acknowledge_v her_o sin_n yet_o do_v not_o the_o evangelist_n who_o set_v down_o but_o the_o brief_a sum_n of_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v speak_v and_o do_v report_v that_o she_o confess_v her_o sin_n in_o plain_a term_n but_o that_o she_o do_v it_o in_o a_o far_o more_o effectual_a manner_n to_o express_v her_o repentance_n then_o can_v otherwise_o have_v be_v do_v in_o so_o few_o word_n more_o effectual_o then_o if_o she_o shall_v plain_o have_v say_v it_o be_v true_a indeed_o sir_n that_o man_n that_o i_o keep_v be_v not_o my_o husband_n but_o i_o live_v in_o shameful_a whoredom_n with_o he_o for_o in_o these_o word_n sir_n i_o see_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o prophet_n she_o do_v not_o only_o confess_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o he_o charge_v she_o with_o but_o she_o do_v also_o profess_v the_o reverence_n and_o honour_n she_o bear_v to_o his_o person_n and_o that_o she_o esteem_v now_o of_o he_o much_o better_a than_o she_o do_v before_o and_o this_o be_v the_o second_o fruit_n of_o her_o conversion_n which_o the_o evangelist_n do_v record_v the_o three_o be_v this_o that_o perceive_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o one_o that_o through_o the_o divine_a knowledge_n and_o holiness_n that_o be_v in_o he_o be_v not_o only_o privy_a to_o her_o secret_a sin_n but_o ready_a also_o to_o charge_v she_o with_o they_o yet_o she_o do_v not_o out_o of_o a_o servile_a fear_n and_o guilty_a conscience_n shrink_v away_o from_o he_o and_o shun_v his_o company_n but_o desire_v further_a communication_n with_o he_o and_o seek_v instruction_n and_o resolution_n from_o he_o in_o a_o case_n of_o conscience_n that_o do_v most_o near_o concern_v she_o for_o be_v touch_v in_o conscience_n with_o remorse_n for_o her_o sin_n and_o careful_a to_o seek_v peace_n with_o god_n she_o desire_v to_o be_v resolve_v by_o he_o in_o the_o right_a way_n how_o she_o may_v seek_v the_o lord_n and_o do_v he_o that_o service_n that_o may_v be_v acceptable_a unto_o he_o now_o of_o these_o three_o sign_n of_o grace_n and_o fruit_n of_o a_o true_a conversion_n that_o be_v note_v in_o this_o poor_a woman_n let_v we_o consider_v in_o order_n so_o as_o we_o may_v receive_v instruction_n and_o comfort_n by_o they_o and_o first_o in_o that_o it_o be_v note_v as_o a_o fruit_n of_o true_a conversion_n and_o repentance_n in_o this_o woman_n that_o be_v charge_v with_o her_o sin_n though_o it_o be_v secret_a she_o present_o acknowledge_v it_o and_o say_v as_o one_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n and_o full_o resolve_v sir_n i_o see_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o prophet_n we_o learn_v that_o he_o that_o be_v true_o penitent_a for_o any_o sin_n will_v be_v ready_a to_o acknowledge_v his_o sin_n even_o to_o man_n when_o he_o be_v charge_v 1._o with_o it_o he_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o acknowledge_v his_o sin_n even_o unto_o man_n when_o he_o be_v charge_v with_o it_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o a_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o acknowledge_v all_o his_o
secret_a sin_n unto_o any_o priest_n as_o the_o papist_n teach_v without_o all_o warrant_n of_o god_n word_n for_o 1._o a_o man_n may_v obtain_v comfort_n and_o assurance_n of_o the_o pardon_n of_o many_o sin_n only_o by_o confess_v they_o unto_o god_n though_o he_o never_o acquaint_v any_o man_n with_o they_o for_o so_o david_n profess_v he_o do_v psal._n 32._o 5._o i_o acknowledge_v my_o sin_n unto_o thou_o and_o my_o iniquity_n have_v i_o not_o hide_v i_o say_v i_o will_v confess_v my_o transgression_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o thou_o forgave_v etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o party_n that_o be_v require_v by_o the_o apostle_n james_n 5._o 16._o to_o acknowledge_v his_o secret_a sin_n unto_o man_n be_v he_o only_o that_o be_v afflict_v in_o conscience_n and_o can_v by_o his_o secret_a confession_n of_o they_o unto_o god_n find_v comfort_n as_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o context_n vers_fw-la 13._o 14._o for_o he_o require_v he_o first_o in_o every_o kind_n of_o affection_n to_o seek_v comfort_n from_o god_n by_o his_o own_o prayer_n before_o he_o advise_v he_o to_o send_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o enjoin_v there_o that_o the_o party_n that_o be_v so_o afflict_a shall_v go_v to_o the_o priest_n only_o but_o leave_v he_o to_o his_o liberty_n to_o make_v choice_n of_o any_o other_o who_o for_o his_o wisdom_n and_o faithfulness_n experience_n and_o love_n be_v fit_a to_o yield_v he_o comfort_n in_o that_o case_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o whereas_o he_o direct_v they_o to_o seek_v for_o help_v against_o the_o sickness_n of_o the_o body_n from_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o god_n have_v give_v that_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o heal_a verse_n 14_o 15._o when_o he_o come_v to_o give_v they_o direction_n to_o seek_v for_o help_v against_o the_o sickness_n and_o affliction_n of_o the_o mind_n he_o bid_v they_o not_o acknowledge_v their_o fault_n to_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n but_o one_o to_o another_o verse_n 16._o 4._o this_o course_n of_o they_o be_v most_o opposite_a to_o god_n will_v for_o that_o which_o he_o will_v have_v keep_v secret_a they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v reveal_v and_o those_o thing_n that_o he_o will_v have_v publish_v they_o teach_v that_o secret_a confession_n will_v serve_v for_o and_o those_o sin_n that_o be_v discover_v to_o the_o priest_n under_o the_o seal_n of_o confession_n though_o they_o tend_v to_o the_o damage_n of_o a_o whole_a state_n they_o teach_v may_v in_o no_o case_n be_v discover_v but_o such_o sin_n as_o be_v either_o open_o commit_v or_o any_o way_n bring_v to_o light_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n man_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o reprove_v we_o for_o and_o charge_v we_o with_o if_o god_n have_v give_v we_o heart_n to_o repent_v of_o those_o sin_n we_o will_v be_v willing_a to_o acknowledge_v they_o even_o unto_o man_n this_o we_o shall_v find_v prove_v by_o many_o example_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 1._o in_o a_o private_a man_n when_o god_n have_v discover_v achan_n sin_n and_o joshuah_n charge_v he_o with_o it_o and_o require_v he_o not_o only_o to_o confess_v it_o to_o god_n but_o to_o he_o show_v i_o and_o hide_v it_o not_o josh._n 7._o 1_o 19_o he_o confess_v it_o not_o to_o god_n only_o but_o to_o joshuah_n and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n that_o know_v of_o his_o sin_n and_o he_o do_v it_o free_o full_o and_o particular_o for_o he_o confess_v more_o than_o they_o can_v charge_v he_o with_o josh._n 7._o 20._o 21._o so_o when_o john_n have_v sharp_o reprove_v sin_n and_o preach_v repentance_n to_o his_o hearer_n it_o be_v say_v matth_n 3._o 16._o they_o come_v and_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o confess_v their_o sin_n the_o like_a we_o read_v of_o the_o ephesian_n act._n 19_o 18._o many_o that_o believe_v come_v and_o confess_v and_o show_v their_o work_n 2._o we_o have_v the_o example_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o minister_n of_o god_n for_o this_o the_o lord_n bid_v samuel_n a_o child_n charge_n eli_n with_o his_o sin_n and_o that_o in_o a_o very_a sharp_a manner_n the_o old_a man_n yield_v present_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n say_v he_o let_v he_o do_v what_o seem_v he_o good_a 1._o sam._n 3._o 18._o the_o lord_n discover_v the_o sin_n of_o jonah_n by_o a_o lot_n unto_o the_o mariner_n they_o charge_v he_o with_o it_o he_o confess_v it_o to_o they_o and_o tell_v they_o more_o than_o they_o can_v charge_v he_o with_o jonah_n 1._o 9_o 10._o he_o tell_v they_o his_o country_n and_o his_o religion_n and_o how_o he_o have_v flee_v from_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n 3._o we_o have_v the_o example_n of_o great_a man_n and_o chief_a magistrate_n for_o this_o the_o prophet_n nathan_n come_v to_o david_n and_o reprove_v he_o for_o his_o sin_n he_o present_o confess_v it_o to_o he_o and_o that_o in_o so_o penitent_a a_o manner_n as_o the_o prophet_n be_v fain_o to_o comfort_v he_o present_o 2._o sam._n 12_o 13._o and_o not_o content_v himself_o to_o confess_v it_o to_o he_o because_o his_o sin_n be_v grow_v public_a and_o scandalous_a he_o make_v the_o 51._o psalm_n public_o to_o be_v sing_v in_o the_o temple_n and_o leave_v to_o all_o posterity_n and_o in_o the_o very_a title_n of_o it_o confess_v his_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o can_v not_o repent_v of_o it_o till_o the_o prophet_n nathan_n have_v come_v to_o he_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o that_o have_v grace_n and_o be_v true_o penitent_a be_v thus_o reason_n willing_a to_o acknowledge_v their_o sin_n even_o to_o man_n be_v diverse_a 1._o it_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o man_n who_o by_o our_o sin_n we_o have_v 1._o offend_v for_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o think_v well_o of_o a_o sinner_n till_o he_o hear_v he_o profess_v his_o repentance_n in_o that_o place_n where_o our_o saviour_n press_v this_o duty_n of_o charity_n most_o he_o do_v it_o upon_o those_o term_n if_o he_o turn_v again_o to_o thou_o say_v irepent_n thou_o shall_v forgive_v he_o luk_n 17._o 4._o and_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n unto_o man_n this_o way_n that_o have_v be_v offend_v by_o our_o sin_n first_o be_v reconcile_v to_o thy_o brother_n and_o then_o come_v and_o offer_v thy_o gift_n matth._n 5._o 24._o and_o it_o be_v note_v as_o a_o chief_a cause_n of_o zedechias_n confusion_n that_o he_o do_v not_o humble_v himself_o before_o jeremiah_n the_o prophet_n 2._o chron._n 36._o 12._o who_o know_v his_o sin_n and_o have_v charge_v he_o with_o it_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o give_v glory_n to_o god_n my_o son_n give_v i_o pray_v thou_o glory_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o make_v confession_n unto_o he_o and_o tell_v i_o now_o what_o thou_o have_v do_v hide_v 2._o it_o not_o from_o i_o say_v joshuah_n to_o achan_n josh._n 7._o 19_o for_o as_o by_o our_o sin_n we_o have_v dishonour_v the_o lord_n so_o by_o profess_v our_o repentance_n we_o great_o glorify_v he_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o god_n servant_n have_v publish_v such_o shameful_a sin_n against_o themselves_o moses_n report_v of_o himself_o how_o hardly_o he_o be_v draw_v to_o go_v on_o god_n errand_n unto_o pharaoh_n and_o how_o oft_o he_o draw_v back_o exod._n 3._o &_o 4._o jeremiah_n report_v how_o that_o in_o impatiency_n see_v the_o opposition_n he_o find_v in_o his_o ministry_n he_o curse_v the_o day_n of_o his_o birth_n jer._n 20._o 14_o etc._n etc._n paul_n report_v not_o only_o before_o agrippa_n and_o many_o profane_a man_n act_n 16._o 11._o how_o he_o have_v be_v mad_a against_o god_n servant_n and_o compel_v they_o to_o blaspheme_v christ_n but_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n 1._o tim._n 1._o 13._o 15._o and_o why_o do_v they_o this_o they_o know_v that_o this_o public_a acknowledgement_n of_o their_o sin_n will_v gain_v much_o glory_n to_o god_n and_o they_o care_v not_o how_o much_o they_o disgrace_v themselves_o so_o they_o may_v honour_v god_n 3._o it_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o give_v themselves_o assurance_n of_o god_n mercy_n pro._n 28._o 14._o he_o that_o confess_v and_o forsake_v his_o sin_n shall_v find_v mercy_n 1._o in_o respect_n of_o the_o assurance_n of_o pardon_n that_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o joshuah_n though_o he_o know_v achan_n sin_n and_o be_v resolve_v he_o shall_v die_v for_o it_o yet_o be_v so_o earnest_a with_o he_o to_o confess_v it_o because_o he_o will_v have_v he_o die_v with_o comfort_n josh._n 7._o 19_o my_o son_n give_v i_o pray_v thou_o glory_n to_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n and_o make_v confession_n unto_o he_o and_o tell_v i_o now_o what_o thou_o have_v do_v hide_v it_o not_o from_o i_o 2._o it_o be_v a_o mean_n to_o find_v mercy_n
with_o god_n for_o the_o recovery_n of_o their_o credit_n with_o man_n who_o think_v the_o worse_a of_o david_n or_o paul_n for_o the_o publish_n of_o their_o sin_n nay_o who_o think_v not_o much_o better_a of_o they_o for_o it_o and_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v so_o because_o of_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n he_o that_o humble_v himself_o shall_v be_v exalt_v say_v our_o saviour_n luke_n 14._o 11._o for_o as_o he_o that_o lose_v his_o life_n for_o christ_n sake_n shall_v find_v it_o matth._n 10._o ●…9_n so_o he_o that_o of_o conscience_n towards_o god_n can_v be_v content_a to_o neglect_v his_o credit_n and_o estimation_n with_o man_n shall_v be_v sure_a to_o loose_v no_o credit_n by_o it_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o that_o hide_v his_o sin_n shall_v not_o prosper_v pro._n 28._o 13._o either_o the_o trouble_n of_o his_o guilty_a conscience_n shall_v be_v increase_v thereby_o psal._n 32._o 3._o when_o i_o hold_v my_o tongue_n my_o bone_n consume_v when_o i_o roar_v all_o the_o day_n or_o 2._o he_o shall_v be_v further_o harden_v and_o make_v more_o profane_a and_o more_o graceless_a more_o unable_a to_o repent_v therefore_o solomon_n when_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o benefit_n of_o confess_v and_o danger_n of_o hide_v sin_n add_v immediate_o pro._n 28._o 14._o bless_a be_v the_o man_n that_o fear_v always_o that_o have_v a_o tender_a conscience_n as_o he_o have_v that_o be_v apt_a to_o confess_v his_o sin_n but_o he_o that_o harden_v his_o heart_n as_o he_o usual_o do_v that_o use_v all_o the_o wit_n and_o learning_n he_o have_v to_o hide_v his_o sin_n shall_v fall_v into_o mischief_n for_o 3._o nothing_o that_o he_o take_v in_o hand_n shall_v prosper_v not_o his_o prayer_n not_o his_o meditation_n god_n grace_n shall_v not_o prosper_v nor_o thrive_v in_o he_o see_v a_o example_n of_o this_o in_o david_n who_o though_o doubtless_o he_o use_v to_o pray_v and_o frequent_a god_n worship_n during_o the_o space_n of_o that_o year_n which_o pass_v between_o his_o sin_n and_o his_o repentance_n yet_o all_o do_v he_o no_o good_a till_o he_o have_v confess_v his_o sin_n to_o exhort_v we_o that_o we_o therefore_o will_v seek_v to_o get_v ourselves_o this_o testimony_n of_o our_o unfeigned_a conversion_n that_o when_o we_o be_v reprove_v for_o our_o sin_n use._n we_o can_v confess_v they_o when_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o word_n meet_v with_o thou_o particular_o and_o thou_o have_v such_o secret_a sin_n discover_v unto_o thou_o as_o neither_o the_o minister_n himself_o nor_o any_o other_o can_v charge_v thou_o with_o as_o oft_o it_o fall_v out_o for_o the_o word_n be_v lively_a in_o operation_n and_o of_o a_o search_a nature_n as_o the_o author_n of_o it_o be_v heb._n 4._o 12_o 13._o if_o i_o say_v when_o thou_o be_v thus_o meet_v with_o thou_o will_v present_o acknowledge_v thy_o sin_n unto_o god_n in_o secret_a as_o he_o do_v of_o who_o we_o read_v 1._o cor._n 14._o 25._o when_o the_o secret_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v make_v manifest_a unto_o he_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n he_o fall_v down_o on_o his_o face_n and_o worship_v god_n no_o doubt_n thou_o may_v find_v much_o comfort_n in_o it_o 2._o yea_o we_o shall_v desire_v that_o we_o may_v be_v thus_o meet_v with_o even_o to_o hear_v that_o that_o particular_o touch_v ourselves_o as_o john_n baptist_n hearer_n do_v luke_n 3._o 10._o 12._o 14._o that_o mind_n shall_v be_v in_o every_o one_o of_o we_o that_o be_v in_o david_n let_v the_o righteous_a smite_v i_o say_v he_o psal._n 141._o 5._o it_o shall_v be_v a_o kindness_n and_o let_v he_o reprove_v i_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o excellent_a oil_n 3._o when_o thy_o sin_n be_v know_v and_o be_v become_v offensive_a unto_o man_n thou_o must_v be_v willing_a to_o confess_v it_o even_o unto_o man_n remember_v the_o danger_n and_o curse_n of_o god_n threaten_v to_o they_o that_o hide_v their_o sin_n and_o take_v heed_n of_o it_o now_o there_o be_v many_o way_n whereby_o man_n hide_v their_o sin_n 1._o by_o justify_v and_o defend_v they_o as_o jonah_n 4._o 9_o do_v thou_o well_o to_o be_v angry_a for_o the_o gourd_n he_o answer_v i_o do_v well_o to_o be_v angry_a to_o the_o death_n as_o many_o delight_n to_o show_v their_o wit_n in_o defend_v many_o sin_n that_o the_o word_n condemn_v 2._o by_o deny_v they_o as_o cain_n gen._n 4._o 9_o and_o gehezi_n 2._o king_n 5._o 25._o and_o ananias_n act_v 5._o 8._o 3._o by_o excuse_v and_o extenuate_v their_o sin_n as_o adam_n for_o say_v job_n job_n 31._o 33._o adam_n hide_v his_o sin_n and_o that_o be_v only_o this_o way_n he_o excuse_v and_o extenuate_v it_o and_o so_o do_v eve_n she_o he_o lay_v the_o fault_n upon_o the_o woman_n which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o and_o she_o upon_o the_o serpent_n gen._n 3._o 12._o 13._o and_o thus_o do_v saul_n seek_v to_o hide_v his_o sin_n by_o excuse_v it_o and_o lay_v the_o fault_n upon_o the_o people_n 1._o sam._n 15._o 21._o 4._o by_o senseless_a silence_n not_o acknowledge_v they_o or_o be_v affect_v with_o they_o as_o judas_n do_v who_o though_o he_o hear_v our_o saviour_n in_o great_a trouble_n of_o spirit_n speak_v plain_o of_o his_o sin_n john_n 13._o 21._o and_o particular_o point_v he_o out_o to_o be_v the_o man_n john_n 13._o 26._o 27._o though_o he_o have_v hear_v the_o fearful_a word_n he_o denounce_v against_o he_o for_o it_o mat._n 26._o 24._o though_o he_o see_v how_o much_o all_o the_o elect_a apostle_n be_v move_v and_o trouble_v with_o it_o matth._n 26._o 22._o yet_o can_v not_o he_o confess_v his_o sin_n nor_o seek_v mercy_n nor_o be_v once_o move_v or_o trouble_v with_o it_o for_o this_o lecture_n the_o three_o and_o twenty_o august_n 22._o 1609._o it_o follow_v that_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o sign_n of_o grace_n and_o fruit_n of_o true_a conversion_n in_o this_o woman_n she_o esteem_v better_a of_o christ_n after_o he_o have_v thus_o touch_v and_o reprove_v she_o then_o ever_o she_o do_v before_o she_o now_o in_o her_o heart_n esteem_v he_o and_o with_o her_o mouth_n acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n of_o god_n and_o from_o hence_o we_o learn_v that_o he_o that_o be_v true_o penitent_a will_v not_o hate_v or_o storm_n against_o he_o that_o shall_v admonish_v or_o reprove_v he_o for_o sin_n but_o love_v he_o the_o better_a rather_o he_o 2._o that_o be_v poor_a in_o spirit_n and_o mourn_v for_o sin_n will_v be_v meek_a also_o matth._n 5._o 3_o 4_o 5._o pro._n 9_o 8._o rebuke_v a_o wise_a man_n and_o he_o will_v love_v thou_o and_o 25._o 12._o as_o a_o ear_n of_o gold_n and_o a_o ornament_n of_o fine_a gold_n so_o be_v a_o wise_a reprover_n upon_o a_o obedient_a ear_n he_o count_v it_o no_o disgrace_n but_o a_o ornament_n and_o honour_n to_o he_o to_o be_v thus_o faithful_o deal_v with_o david_n esteem_v better_a of_o nathan_n after_o he_o have_v so_o plain_o rebuke_v he_o than_o ever_o he_o do_v before_o see_v the_o reverend_a respect_n he_o show_v unto_o he_o when_o he_o come_v to_o speak_v with_o he_o he_o have_v present_a access_n to_o he_o 1._o king_n 1._o 23._o and_o you_o shall_v find_v verse_n 27._o that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o conceal_v from_o he_o but_o to_o advise_v with_o he_o about_o all_o his_o affair_n of_o great_a moment_n so_o act_v 2._o the_o same_o man_n that_o have_v mock_v the_o apostle_n before_o verse_n 13._o when_o by_o their_o ministry_n they_o be_v plain_o rebuke_v they_o esteem_v reverent_o of_o they_o act_n 2._o 37._o so_o do_v he_o also_o of_o who_o we_o read_v 1._o cor._n 14._o 25._o he_o report_v to_o all_o man_n and_o upon_o all_o occasion_n that_o god_n be_v of_o a_o truth_n in_o that_o ministry_n reason_n 1._o because_o they_o know_v god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o that_o reproof_n that_o reason_n be_v give_v they_o according_a to_o his_o word_n whosoever_o be_v the_o instrument_n 2._o chron._n 35._o 22._o though_o pharaoh_n necho_n be_v josias_n enemy_n yet_o the_o counsel_n and_o reproof_n he_o send_v he_o come_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o it_o be_v his_o ruin_n that_o he_o hearken_v not_o unto_o it_o he_o that_o reprove_v i_o for_o any_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o word_n speak_v to_o i_o on_o god_n behalf_n this_o be_v not_o his_o word_n but_o god_n and_o so_o to_o be_v receive_v not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o a_o inferior_a but_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v that_o despise_v despise_v not_o man_n but_o god_n 1._o thess._n 4._o 8._o and_o when_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o god_n the_o great_a must_v lay_v aside_o his_o dignity_n and_o think_v he_o can_v never_o be_v humble_a enough_o judge_n
4._o 13._o by_o this_o the_o prophet_n know_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v determine_v to_o destroy_v amaziah_n 2._o chron._n 25._o 16._o because_o he_o scornful_o reject_v his_o admonition_n and_o will_v not_o receive_v it_o and_o this_o be_v give_v as_o a_o undoubted_a sign_n of_o the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n 2._o chron._n 36._o 15_o 16._o that_o when_o god_n send_v they_o his_o messenger_n to_o admonish_v and_o reprove_v they_o they_o mock_v his_o messenger_n and_o misuse_v his_o prophet_n until_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lord_n rise_v against_o his_o people_n till_o there_o be_v no_o remedy_n david_n commit_v two_o heinous_a sin_n but_o be_v god_n child_n and_o find_v mercy_n why_o be_v admonish_v he_o take_v it_o well_o and_o profit_v by_o it_o 2._o sam._n 12._o 13._o but_o let_v it_o be_v the_o least_o sin_n that_o can_v be_v commit_v if_o be_v admonish_v a_o man_n will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v he_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n matth._n 18._o 17._o the_o high_a degree_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o sit_v in_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o scorner_n psal._n 1._o 1._o and_o who_o be_v a_o scorner_n he_o that_o will_v not_o endure_v admonition_n but_o hate_v he_o that_o reprove_v he_o pro._n 9_o 8._o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o lecture_n on_o august_n xxix_o mdcix_o joh._n four_o xx._n our_o father_n worship_v in_o this_o mountain_n and_o you_o say_v that_o in_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o place_n where_o man_n ought_v to_o worship_v we_o have_v already_o hear_v that_o the_o evangelist_n in_o this_o verse_n and_o the_o former_a do_v set_v down_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o speech_n whereby_o our_o saviour_n do_v discover_v to_o this_o poor_a woman_n her_o secret_a sin_n and_o reprove_v she_o for_o it_o and_o this_o he_o set_v forth_o in_o three_o notable_a fruit_n and_o sign_n of_o a_o true_a conversion_n which_o it_o bring_v forth_o in_o she_o 1._o she_o acknowledge_v her_o sin_n 2._o she_o esteem_v far_o more_o reverent_o of_o christ_n than_o she_o do_v before_o 3._o she_o seek_v to_o he_o for_o instruction_n and_o resolution_n in_o a_o doubt_n that_o trouble_v her_o conscience_n the_o two_o first_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o former_a verse_n now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o and_o last_o as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o this_o verse_n for_o this_o must_v needs_o be_v acknowledge_v another_o notable_a fruit_n of_o god_n spirit_n and_o sign_n of_o her_o conversion_n that_o perceive_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o one_o that_o through_o the_o divine_a knowledge_n and_o holiness_n that_o be_v in_o he_o be_v not_o only_o privy_a to_o all_o her_o secret_a sin_n but_o ready_a also_o to_o charge_v she_o with_o they_o yet_o she_o shrink_v not_o from_o he_o nor_o leave_v his_o company_n but_o desire_v further_a communication_n with_o he_o and_o seek_v instruction_n and_o resolution_n of_o he_o in_o a_o case_n of_o conscience_n that_o do_v most_o near_o concern_v she_o now_o before_o we_o can_v well_o receive_v that_o instruction_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n intend_v to_o give_v we_o in_o this_o verse_n five_o question_n must_v be_v answer_v for_o the_o open_n and_o unfold_n of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o text._n 1_o what_o the_o worship_n be_v that_o she_o here_o speak_v of_o 2._o what_o mountain_n be_v that_o she_o here_o speak_v of_o 3._o who_o be_v these_o father_n that_o she_o say_v do_v worship_n in_o that_o mountain_n 4._o what_o move_v she_o to_o make_v any_o doubt_n of_o this_o matter_n 5._o why_o seek_v she_o to_o be_v instruct_v in_o this_o question_n rather_o than_o in_o any_o other_o for_o the_o first_o the_o word_n that_o be_v here_o use_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v proper_o adoration_n even_o a_o bodily_a and_o outward_a worship_n when_o by_o some_o reverend_a 1._o gesture_n of_o the_o body_n we_o testify_v the_o inward_a subjection_n and_o honour_n that_o in_o our_o heart_n we_o bear_v unto_o god_n now_o because_o we_o can_v do_v no_o part_n of_o worship_n and_o service_n unto_o god_n well_o but_o there_o must_v be_v in_o it_o even_o some_o bodily_a signification_n of_o reverence_n unto_o he_o therefore_o also_o the_o whole_a worship_n we_o do_v unto_o god_n be_v oft_o call_v adoration_n yet_o in_o this_o place_n it_o be_v not_o put_v for_o the_o whole_a worship_n of_o god_n but_o only_o for_o the_o most_o public_a and_o solemn_a worship_n which_o stand_v in_o sacrifice_n and_o ceremony_n appoint_v by_o the_o lord_n for_o she_o know_v well_o that_o there_o be_v many_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n which_o the_o jew_n do_v use_v as_o well_o in_o any_o other_o place_n as_o in_o jerusalem_n they_o use_v to_o pray_v in_o the_o synagogue_n matth._n 6._o 2._o yea_o and_o in_o their_o private_a house_n also_o dan._n 6._o 10._o they_o use_v to_o read_v and_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o their_o synagogue_n act_n 15._o 21._o and_o they_o have_v synagogue_n not_o in_o jerusalem_n only_o but_o in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n at_o damascus_n act_v 9_o 2._o at_o salamis_n act._n 13._o 5._o at_o antioch_n act._n 13._o 14._o at_o iconium_n act._n 14._o 1._o at_o thessalonica_n act._n 17._o 1._o at_o corinth_n act._n 18._o 17._o at_o ephesus_n act_v 18._o 19_o 2._o the_o mountain_n that_o she_o speak_v of_o here_o be_v mount_n gerizim_n as_o appear_v not_o only_o because_o both_o josephus_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o macabee_n 2._o 2._o mac._n 6._o 2._o do_v affirm_v that_o the_o samaritan_n temple_n stand_v upon_o that_o mountain_n who_o authority_n though_o it_o be_v mere_o humane_a and_o therefore_o such_o as_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n can_v rest_v upon_o nor_o be_v convince_v by_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n either_o because_o we_o know_v all_o man_n be_v subject_a unto_o error_n rom._n 3._o 4._o yet_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o story_n be_v of_o some_o use_n as_o those_o civil_a story_n and_o chronicle_n be_v that_o we_o read_v of_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n namely_o that_o book_n of_o the_o war_n of_o the_o lord_n mention_v num._n 21._o 14._o and_o that_o book_n of_o jasher_n josh._n 10._o 13._o and_o that_o book_n of_o the_o act_n of_o solomon_n mention_v 1._o king_n 11._o 41._o but_o special_o because_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o judg._n 9_o 7._o that_o mount_n gerizim_n be_v the_o mount_n that_o stand_v by_o this_o town_n sychem_n 3._o by_o their_o father_n she_o mean_v not_o only_o the_o true_a ancestor_n of_o the_o samaritan_n which_o be_v heathen_n and_o infidel_n as_o you_o shall_v read_v 3._o 2._o king_n 17._o 24._o but_o jacob_n also_o and_o the_o patriarch_n as_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o 12._o verse_n for_o the_o four_o question_n the_o reason_n of_o her_o doubt_n and_o scruple_n be_v this_o 1._o for_o mount_n gerizim_n she_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v it_o be_v as_o holy_a a_o place_n as_o 4._o jerusalem_n not_o only_o 1._o because_o her_o true_a ancestor_n have_v worship_v there_o and_o in_o the_o temple_n that_o stand_v there_o but_o 2._o special_o because_o it_o be_v the_o place_n that_o the_o patriarch_n and_o jacob_n himself_o have_v worship_v in_o for_o it_o be_v say_v gen._n 33._o 18._o 20._o that_o jacob_n hard_a by_o sichem_n build_v a_o altar_n and_o call_v it_o the_o mighty_a god_n of_o israel_n and_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o the_o place_n upon_o which_o he_o build_v that_o altar_n be_v this_o mount_n gerizim_n which_o stand_v hard_o by_o sychem_n for_o the_o patriarch_n before_o the_o temple_n be_v build_v be_v wont_a to_o make_v choice_n of_o mountain_n to_o serve_v god_n on_o for_o the_o better_a stir_v up_o of_o their_o affection_n by_o the_o contemplation_n of_o god_n work_n and_o that_o by_o god_n own_o direction_n also_o 1._o this_o be_v note_v of_o abraham_n gen._n 12._o 8._o and_o 22._o 2._o of_o jacob_n gen._n 31._o 14._o of_o the_o israelite_n the_o posterity_n of_o jacob_n exod._n 3._o 12._o and_o in_o a_o fond_a imitation_n thereof_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v that_o the_o idolatrous_a jew_n do_v offer_v incense_n and_o pour_v out_o their_o drink_n offering_n upon_o the_o roof_n of_o their_o house_n jer._n 19_o 13._o 3._o beside_o upon_o this_o mountain_n the_o lord_n have_v appoint_v that_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n shall_v stand_v to_o bless_v the_o people_n so_o soon_o as_o ever_o they_o be_v come_v to_o the_o land_n of_o canaan_n deut._n 11._o 29._o and_o 27._o 12._o on_o the_o other_o side_n she_o have_v reason_n to_o doubt_v that_o jerusalem_n be_v the_o place_n where_o this_o solemn_a service_n shall_v be_v do_v unto_o god_n because_o he_o who_o she_o find_v to_o be_v a_o prophet_n of_o god_n and_o all_o of_o his_o
buttery_n or_o a_o seller_n or_o alehouse_n in_o drink_v of_o health_n they_o can_v never_o be_v see_v to_o kneel_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n in_o prayer_n to_o he_o i_o know_v what_o man_n pretend_v for_o this_o if_o the_o person_n to_o who_o health_n they_o drink_v be_v such_o as_o to_o who_o in_o the_o civil_a custom_n of_o our_o country_n the_o knee_n be_v due_a it_o can_v be_v say_v they_o unlawful_a and_o unfit_a in_o drink_v to_o their_o health_n to_o kneel_v down_o but_o how_o witty_a soever_o these_o man_n be_v to_o excuse_v their_o sin_n it_o be_v certain_a this_o use_n be_v first_o take_v up_o in_o scorn_n and_o contempt_n of_o prayer_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v marvel_v if_o they_o that_o have_v thus_o abuse_v their_o knee_n in_o do_v homage_n to_o the_o devil_n be_v so_o void_a of_o grace_n as_o never_o to_o bow_v their_o knee_n to_o the_o honour_n and_o service_n of_o god_n but_o let_v they_o that_o use_v so_o oft_o to_o drink_v health_n upon_o their_o knee_n consider_v what_o they_o will_v answer_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o so_o great_a profaneness_n 3._o the_o three_o and_o last_o sort_n of_o they_o that_o i_o tell_v you_o be_v to_o be_v charge_v with_o this_o sin_n of_o not_o show_v due_a reverence_n to_o god_n worship_n when_o they_o be_v 3._o present_a at_o it_o be_v they_o that_o though_o they_o will_v come_v sometime_o to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n special_o if_o they_o have_v the_o example_n of_o their_o better_n to_o draw_v they_o unto_o it_o yet_o carry_v themselves_o so_o as_o if_o they_o do_v study_v to_o show_v that_o they_o despise_v our_o assembly_n and_o the_o worship_n we_o do_v to_o god_n in_o they_o as_o many_o papist_n that_o be_v present_a when_o we_o give_v thanks_n to_o god_n in_o our_o meal_n will_v by_o some_o outward_a behaviour_n witness_v their_o dislike_n so_o do_v these_o man_n be_v in_o heart_n either_o papist_n or_o atheist_n which_o be_v worse_o carry_v themselves_o in_o our_o public_a assembly_n by_o prate_v and_o laugh_v and_o play_v the_o part_n of_o jester_n and_o profane_a fool_n they_o do_v purposely_o both_o hinder_v themselves_o and_o all_o that_o be_v near_o unto_o they_o from_o profit_v by_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v teach_v yea_o endeavour_v all_o they_o can_v to_o make_v the_o word_n and_o service_n of_o god_n ridiculous_a and_o contemptible_a unto_o other_o sure_o the_o sin_n of_o these_o man_n be_v exceed_v great_a before_o the_o lord_n our_o saviour_n call_v these_o despiser_n and_o scorner_n of_o holy_a thing_n dog_n matth._n 7._o 6._o when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v show_v that_o nimrod_n be_v a_o oppressor_n in_o high_a contempt_n of_o god_n he_o call_v he_o a_o mighty_a hunter_n before_o the_o lord_n gen._n 10._o 9_o and_o sure_o these_o that_o dare_v be_v thus_o profane_a even_o in_o the_o place_n of_o god_n special_a presence_n before_o the_o lord_n may_v well_o be_v say_v to_o be_v profane_a in_o the_o high_a degree_n profane_a in_o high_a contempt_n to_o god_n himself_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v such_o man_n will_v keep_v themselves_o away_o from_o god_n sanctuary_n or_o that_o we_o have_v such_o porter_n to_o keep_v they_o away_o as_o they_o have_v under_o the_o law_n 2._o chron._n 23._o 19_o for_o they_o do_v enough_o to_o bring_v god_n vengeance_n on_o we_o all_o by_o their_o sin_n but_o to_o conclude_v i_o will_v say_v to_o these_o man_n though_o i_o hope_v there_o be_v none_o such_o here_o and_o if_o there_o be_v i_o have_v small_a hope_n to_o do_v they_o good_a as_o the_o apostle_n do_v 1._o cor._n 10._o 22._o do_v you_o provoke_v the_o lord_n unto_o anger_n be_v you_o great_a than_o he_o jer._n 7._o 19_o do_v they_o provoke_v i_o to_o anger_n say_v the_o lord_n do_v they_o not_o provoke_v themselves_o to_o the_o confusion_n of_o their_o own_o face_n do_v thou_o never_o feel_v the_o terror_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v the_o fear_n of_o his_o glorious_a power_n and_o majesty_n never_o strike_v thy_o heart_n and_o make_v it_o to_o tremble_v how_o have_v thou_o be_v affect_v in_o the_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n this_o last_o summer_n if_o thou_o have_v let_v this_o restrain_v thou_o from_o this_o profaneness_n and_o teach_v thou_o to_o adore_v and_o do_v he_o reverence_v special_o in_o his_o sanctuary_n see_v how_o this_o reason_n be_v urge_v by_o the_o prophet_n psal._n 29._o when_o he_o have_v exhort_v the_o great_a verse_n 2._o to_o give_v unto_o the_o lord_n the_o glory_n due_a unto_o his_o name_n which_o they_o can_v never_o do_v unless_o they_o do_v worship_n and_o adore_v he_o in_o his_o glorious_a sanctuary_n he_o speak_v much_o vers_n 3._o 9_o as_o a_o effectual_a reason_n to_o move_v they_o to_o it_o of_o the_o glory_n and_o greatness_n and_o power_n of_o god_n that_o appear_v in_o the_o thunder_n and_o lightning_n and_o vers_n 9_o conclude_v his_o speech_n in_o it_o thus_o and_o in_o his_o temple_n do_v every_o one_o speak_v of_o his_o glory_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v in_o his_o temple_n his_o glory_n appear_v much_o more_o than_o in_o that_o and_o the_o greatness_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o appear_v in_o that_o make_v man_n give_v the_o more_o glory_n to_o god_n in_o his_o sanctuary_n and_o show_v the_o more_o reverence_n in_o it_o lecture_n the_o thirty_o october_n 24._o 1609._o it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o come_v to_o the_o question_n itself_o which_o this_o woman_n propound_v to_o our_o saviour_n wherein_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o receive_v our_o instruction_n from_o it_o these_o three_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v 1._o that_o perceive_v he_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n and_o one_o that_o can_v tell_v secret_n she_o seek_v not_o to_o know_v her_o fortune_n as_o we_o say_v how_o long_o she_o shall_v live_v how_o many_o more_o husband_n she_o shall_v have_v or_o how_o many_o child_n what_o manner_n of_o one_o they_o will_v prove_v or_o such_o like_a matter_n which_o if_o she_o will_v have_v yield_v to_o that_o curiosity_n that_o be_v in_o we_o all_o by_o nature_n she_o will_v have_v question_v with_o he_o about_o but_o be_v effectual_o touch_v in_o conscience_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n with_o remorse_n for_o her_o sin_n and_o desire_v of_o salvation_n she_o seek_v only_o to_o be_v instruct_v by_o he_o in_o a_o chief_a ground_n of_o religion_n and_o case_n of_o conscience_n 2._o though_o she_o be_v but_o a_o woman_n and_o a_o samaritan_n and_o a_o harlot_n yet_o do_v she_o take_v notice_n of_o a_o main_a controversy_n that_o be_v between_o the_o jew_n and_o samaritan_n about_o the_o right_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o true_a manner_n of_o serve_v god_n yea_o she_o be_v acquaint_v also_o with_o the_o chief_a reason_n that_o the_o samaritan_n allege_v for_o themselves_o 3._o she_o satisfy_v not_o her_o conscience_n in_o the_o long_a custom_n of_o all_o her_o neighbour_n and_o antiquity_n of_o their_o religion_n neither_o fear_v the_o imputation_n of_o lightness_n and_o inconstancy_n among_o her_o neighbour_n but_o call_v in_o question_n the_o religion_n which_o herself_o and_o all_o her_o ancestor_n have_v profe●…ed_v and_o earnest_o desire_v to_o be_v resolve_v by_o christ_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n or_o no._n and_o from_o this_o example_n thus_o consider_v we_o have_v this_o doctrine_n to_o learn_v for_o our_o instruction_n that_o every_o christian_n even_o woman_n be_v bind_v to_o seek_v to_o be_v resolve_v and_o settle_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n of_o god_n before_o i_o come_v to_o the_o 5._o proof_n of_o this_o two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v premise_v for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o doctrine_n 1._o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v to_o study_v the_o controversy_n so_o as_o to_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v a_o adversary_n for_o this_o be_v a_o special_a gift_n require_v of_o the_o minister_n to_o be_v able_a to_o convince_v the_o adversary_n tit._n 1._o 9_o and_o to_o stop_v his_o mouth_n verse_n 11._o yea_o it_o may_v do_v hurt_v to_o a_o weak_a christian_a to_o busy_v himself_o much_o with_o controversy_n to_o read_v the_o book_n of_o adversary_n to_o the_o truth_n or_o confer_v with_o they_o rom._n 14._o 1._o he_o that_o be_v weak_a in_o the_o faith_n receive_v but_o not_o for_o controversy_n in_o disputation_n 2._o i_o say_v not_o that_o there_o be_v the_o like_a measure_n of_o knowledge_n require_v of_o every_o christian._n for_o 1._o of_o we_o that_o live_v in_o these_o day_n in_o which_o the_o light_n be_v so_o clear_o reveal_v in_o which_o beside_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n there_o be_v book_n of_o all_o sort_n write_v more_o knowledge_n be_v require_v th●…n_o be_v of_o our_o
and_o by_o himself_o luke_n 5._o ●…6_n he_o keep_v himself_o apart_o in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o pray_v he_o use_v this_o kind_n of_o pray_v in_o the_o morning_n ma●…e_n 1._o 35._o in_o the_o morning_n very_o early_o before_o day_n he_o arise_v and_o go_v out_o into_o a_o solitary_a place_n and_o there_o pray_v he_o use_v it_o also_o in_o the_o evening_n matth._n 14_o ●…3_n he_o go_v up_o into_o a_o mountain_n alone_o have_v no_o house_n of_o his_o own●…_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o go_v abroad_o into_o the_o most_o solitary_a place_n to_o pray_v and_o when_o the_o evening_n be_v come_v he_o be_v there_o alone_o yea_o this_o be_v his_o custom_n luke_n 22._o 39_o he_o go_v as_o he_o be_v wont_n to_o the_o mount_n of_o olive_n 5._o he_o be_v wont_a to_o perform_v this_o worship_n of_o god_n with_o gesture_n and_o sign_n of_o as_o much_o reverence_n humility_n and_o submission_n as_o we_o shall_v read_v any_o of_o god_n servant_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o do_v luke_n 2●…_n 41._o he_o knecle_v down_o and_o pray_v matth_n 26._o 39_o he_o fall_v on_o his_o face_n and_o pray_v the_o reason_n why_o he_o be_v thus_o diligent_a in_o worship_v god_n wa●…_n not_o so_o much_o for_o his_o own_o sake_n as_o for_o us._n for_o he_o have_v no_o need_n to_o pray_v for_o he_o have_v reason_n all_o creature_n in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o command_n and_o by_o his_o word_n be_v able_a to_o do_v what_o please_v he_o matth._n 8._o 8_o 9_o speak_v the_o word_n only_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v heal_v for_o i_o be_o a_o man_n also_o in_o authority_n etc._n etc._n why_o then_o do_v he_o thus_o use_v to_o worship_n god_n sure_o for_o our_o sake_n only_o and_o not_o for_o himself_o but_o in_o respect_n of_o us._n three_o reason_n there_o be_v for_o it_o 1._o that_o he_o may_v purchase_v to_o we_o eternal_a life_n it_o be_v necessary_a he_o shall_v perfect_o keep_v the_o law_n for_o thus_o run_v the_o covenant_n matth._n 19_o 17._o if_o thou_o 1._o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v th●…_n commandment_n yea_o perfect_o gal_n 〈◊〉_d 1●…_n this_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v therefore_o he_o gal._n 4_o 4_o 5._o be_v make_v under_o the_o law_n that_o he_o may_v redeem_v they_o that_o be_v under_o the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v receive_v th●…_n adoption_n of_o son_n therefore_o it_o become_v he_o to_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n matth._n 7_o 5._o and_o this_o be_v a_o chief_a part_n of_o that_o righteousness_n god_n require_v of_o we_o in_o his_o law_n that_o we_o worship_v he_o mat._n 22._o 38._o this_o be_v the_o first_o and_o the_o great_a comm●…ndement_n 2._o that_o he_o may_v give_v we_o a_o example_n for_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v of_o one_o of_o his_o action_n may_v be_v say_v of_o all_o that_o he_o do_v in_o obedience_n to_o the_o moral_a law_n john_n 13._o 15._o i_o have_v give_v you_o a_o example_n that_o you_o shall_v do_v as_o i_o have_v do_v 3._o that_o he_o may_v obtain_v for_o we_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v make_v able_a to_o do_v the_o like_a for_o as_o the_o disobedience_n of_o adam_n deserve_v that_o all_o his_o posterity_n shall_v loose_v the_o image_n of_o god_n and_o become_v like_a unto_o he_o rom._n 5._o 22._o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n so_o the_o active_a obedience_n of_o christ_n have_v deserve_v that_o god_n shall_v renew_v his_o image_n in_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o give_v they_o his_o quicken_a spirit_n rom._n 8._o 2._o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n jesus_n have_v make_v i_o free_a from_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o death_n the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v to_o stir_v every_o one_o of_o we_o up_o to_o a_o great_a conscience_n and_o diligence_n in_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o god_n worship_n special_o in_o prayer_n use_v for_o if_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o have_v not_o such_o need_n to_o do_v it_o in_o respect_n of_o himself_o yet_o use_v it_o so_o constant_o and_o use_v it_o only_o because_o the_o law_n require_v it_o of_o we_o and_o that_o he_o may_v make_v himself_o a_o example_n to_o we_o and_o that_o he_o may_v obtain_v grace_n for_o we_o to_o do_v it_o what_o excuse_n can_v we_o that_o be_v bind_v unto_o it_o by_o god_n law_n and_o stand_v in_o such_o need_n of_o it_o have_v for_o our_o ordinary_a neglect_n of_o public_a prayer_n of_o prayer_n with_o our_o family_n of_o secret_a and_o private_a prayer_n 2_o the_o second_o thing_n we_o be_v to_o observe_v here_o be_v this_o that_o our_o saviour_n in_o commend_v the_o worship_n and_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n make_v himself_o one_o of_o their_o number_n acknowledge_v himself_o a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n profess_v that_o himself_o do_v worship_n god_n as_o they_o do_v from_o whence_o this_o doctrine_n arise_v for_o our_o instruction_n that_o those_o assembly_n that_o enjoy_v the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n of_o salvation_n though_o they_o have_v many_o corruption_n remain_v in_o they_o be_v to_o be_v acknowledge_v 1._o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n and_o such_o as_o none_o of_o the_o faithful_a may_v make_v separation_n from_o we_o shall_v need_v no_o further_o proof_n of_o this_o doctrine_n than_o the_o example_n of_o our_o saviour_n himself_o if_o we_o consider_v on_o the_o one_o side_n how_o corrupt_a the_o state_n of_o the_o jew_n church_n be_v in_o his_o time_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n how_o far_o forth_o our_o saviour_n do_v communicate_v with_o they_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n 1._o for_o the_o first_o what_o the_o state_n of_o that_o church_n be_v in_o his_o time_n we_o may_v know_v if_o we_o consider_v 1._o what_o the_o priest_n and_o teacher_n be_v themselves_o that_o have_v the_o order_n of_o god_n worship_n 2._o what_o the_o people_n be_v with_o who_o he_o be_v to_o join_v in_o god_n worship_n 3._o what_o the_o worship_n itself_o be_v wherein_o he_o be_v to_o communicate_v 1._o the_o priest_n and_o teacher_n 1._o be_v ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a matth._n 23._o 16._o 2._o they_o be_v wicked_a and_o ungodly_a matth._n 23._o 3._o 3._o they_o have_v a_o corrupt_a and_o unlawful_a entrance_n into_o their_o call_n yea_o even_o the_o high_a priest_n himself_o for_o whereas_o by_o god_n ordinance_n he_o be_v to_o hold_v that_o office_n during_o his_o life_n this_o office_n be_v buy_v and_o sell_v and_o make_v annual_a john_n 11._o 49._o caiphas_n be_v high_a priest_n for_o that_o year_n 2._o and_o what_o be_v the_o people_n sure_o the_o most_o of_o they_o in_o all_o place_n where_o he_o converse_v be_v notorious_o and_o obstinate_o wicked_a in_o nazaret_n where_o he_o have_v live_v most_o see_v what_o they_o be_v luke_n 4._o 28_o 29._o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o synagogue_n when_o they_o hear_v this_o doctrine_n be_v fill_v with_o wrath_n and_o rise_v up_o and_o thrust_v he_o out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o lead_v he_o to_o the_o edge_n of_o a_o hill_n to_o cast_v he_o down_o headlong_o but_o be_v they_o better_a in_o other_o place_n no_o he_o upbraid_v all_o the_o city_n where_o most_o of_o his_o great_a work_n be_v do_v woe_n be_v to_o thou_o corazin_n woe_n be_v to_o thou_o bethsaida_n matth._n 11._o 20_o 21._o and_o be_v the_o people_n of_o jerusalem_n any_o better_a you_o shall_v perceive_v that_o by_o that_o affection_n they_o show_v at_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n when_o pilate_n a_o gentile_a have_v make_v such_o a_o offer_n to_o they_o luke_n 23._o 18._o all_o the_o multitude_n cry_v at_o once_o not_o he_o but_o barrabas_n and_o matth._n 27._o 25._o when_o pilate_n have_v wash_v his_o hand_n and_o protest_v for_o christ_n innocency_n than_o answer_v all_o the_o people_n and_o say_v desperate_o his_o blood_n b●…_n on_o we_o and_o our_o child_n 3._o the_o worship_n itself_o that_o be_v use_v in_o that_o church_n have_v many_o corruption_n in_o it_o 1._o they_o use_v many_o superstitious_a ceremony_n the_o observation_n whereof_o they_o urge_v more_o strict_o than_o the_o commandment_n and_o ordinance_n of_o god_n mar._n 7._o 9_o 2._o the_o temple_n be_v profane_v and_o make_v a_o den_n of_o thief_n matth._n 2●…_n 12_o 13._o 3._o the_o discipline_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n be_v shameful_o abuse_v john_n 〈◊〉_d 22._o the_o jew_n have_v decree_v that_o if_o any_o do_v confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n he_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v ipsofacto_fw-la 4._o the_o doctrine_n be_v corrupt_v in_o many_o point_n as_o you_o shall_v find_v matth._n 5._o 2●…_n 48._o 5._o some_o corruption_n also_o be_v creep_v into_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o they_o keep_v it_o a_o day_n after_o our_o saviour_n who_o observe_v the_o
god_n then_o for_o he_o that_o be_v utter_o irreligious_a and_o profane_a therefore_o the_o lord_n condemn_v the_o very_a atheist_n because_o he_o do_v not_o pray_v psal._n 14._o 4._o 2._o the_o wicked_a by_o the_o service_n he_o do_v to_o god_n do_v oft_o obtain_v freedom_n from_o temporal_a judgement_n that_o otherwise_o will_v fall_v upon_o he_o and_o get_v temporal_a reward_n 1._o king_n 21._o 29._o ahab_n do_v so_o 3._o many_o a_o wicked_a man_n by_o come_v into_o god_n house_n yea_o even_o when_o he_o have_v come_v with_o a_o wicked_a intent_n have_v be_v effectual_o call_v as_o the_o unbeliever_n that_o paul_n speak_v of_o 1._o cor._n 14._o 25_o 26._o and_o those_o messenger_n that_o be_v send_v to_o apprehend_v christ_n john_n 7._o 46._o in_o which_o three_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v think_v good_a policy_n for_o the_o wicked_a man_n to_o pray_v and_o hear_v and_o serve_v god_n 4._o no_o sin_n that_o any_o man_n have_v live_v in_o in_o former_a time_n can_v make_v his_o prayer_n or_o service_n ever_o a_o whit_n the_o less_o acceptable_a to_o god_n if_o he_o do_v now_o repent_v the_o publican_n upon_o his_o unfeigned_a humiliation_n and_o repentance_n go_v home_o justify_v luke_n 18._o 13_o 14._o so_o that_o this_o doctrine_n tend_v not_o to_o the_o terror_n and_o discomfit_v of_o any_o the_o most_o notorious_a sinner_n that_o be_v penitent_a but_o to_o the_o impenitent_a sinner_n to_o the_o man_n that_o continue_v in_o sin_n it_o be_v indeed_o a_o fearful_a doctrine_n and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o fearful_a now_o be_v utter_v by_o a_o weak_a man_n yet_o it_o will_v certain_o be_v fearful_a to_o thou_o when_o the_o lord_n shall_v charge_v it_o upon_o thy_o conscience_n god_n regard_v not_o any_o service_n thou_o do_v to_o he_o nay_o he_o will_v not_o have_v thou_o to_o do_v he_o any_o service_n nay_o he_o abhor_v whatsoever_o service_n come_v from_o thou_o lecture_n the_o two_o and_o forty_o february_n 20._o 1609._o and_o thus_o have_v i_o finish_v the_o first_o reason_n that_o our_o saviour_n here_o bring_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o this_o doctrine_n his_o second_o reason_n be_v this_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n now_o in_o this_o second_o reason_n we_o must_v consider_v first_o the_o meaning_n of_o 2._o the_o word_n than_o the_o force_n they_o have_v to_o conclude_v that_o for_o which_o christ_n allege_v they_o first_o then_o we_o must_v not_o take_v these_o word_n as_o a_o perfect_a definition_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n for_o that_o that_o be_v here_o speak_v of_o god_n agree_v also_o to_o the_o angel_n and_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n the_o angel_n be_v spirit_n psal._n 104._o 4._o he_o make_v th●…_n 〈◊〉_d his_o messenger_n and_o heb._n 〈◊〉_d 14._o be_v they_o not_o all_o minister_a spirit_n the_o soul_n of_o man_n also_o be_v a_o spirit_n eccles_n 12._o 7._o the_o spirit_n shall_v return_v to_o god_n who_o give_v it_o a●…s_n 7._o 59_o lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n but_o because_o of_o all_o the_o creature_n god_n have_v make_v these_o do_v most_o full_o and_o lively_o resemble_v the_o divine_a nature_n it_o have_v please_v the_o lord_n have_v respect_n therein_o to_o the_o weakness_n and_o shallowness_n of_o our_o capacity_n to_o call_v himself_o a_o spirit_n both_o here_o and_o in_o other_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o cor._n 3._o 17._o the_o lord_n be_v a_o spirit_n heb._n 9_o 14_o christ_n godhead_n be_v call_v the_o eternal_a spirit_n 1._o as_o they_o be_v immortal_a so_o the_o lord_n be_v immortal_a yea_o he_o only_o have_v immortality_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 16._o of_o himself_o 2._o as_o they_o be_v wise_a and_o understand_a nature_n so_o the_o lord_n be_v of_o himself_o infinite_a in_o wisdom_n in_o which_o respect_n he_o be_v call_v god_n only_o wise_a 1._o tim._n 1._o 17._o 3._o as_o they_o be_v simple_a invisible_a incorporeal_a not_o have_v 〈◊〉_d mixture_n nor_o consist_v of_o any_o corporal_a substance_n and_o therefore_o 〈◊〉_d ●…oves_v himself_o after_o his_o resurrection_n not_o to_o be_v a_o spirit_n by_o this_o reason_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d behold_v my_o hand_n and_o my_o foot_n handle_v i_o and_o see_v for_o a_o spirit_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ●…d_v bone_n as_o you_o see_v i_o have_v so_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n principal_o be_v the_o lord_n call_v a_o spirit_n in_o this_o place_n because_o he_o be_v not_o a_o visible_a sensible_a corporal_a but_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n now_o for_o the_o force_n that_o be_v in_o this_o reason_n to_o conclude_v that_o for_o which_o christ_n bring_v it_o the_o true_a worshipper_n must_v worship_v the_o father_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n not_o with_o a_o ceremonial_a and_o outward_a worship_n because_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n the_o force_n i_o say_v of_o this_o reason_n be_v evident_a his_o worship_n must_v be_v answerable_a to_o his_o own_o nature_n such_o as_o himself_o be_v such_o must_v the_o worshipper_n be_v that_o he_o delight_v in_o according_a to_o the_o proverb_n like_o will_v have_v like_a like_o master_n like_o man_n such_o as_o a_o man_n own_o disposition_n be_v such_o he_o desire_v they_o shall_v be_v that_o serve_v he_o david_n have_v no_o better_a a_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o do_v unfeigned_o fear_n god_n then_o this_o that_o all_o his_o delight_n be_v in_o godly_a man_n psal._n 16._o 3._o special_o that_o his_o care_n be_v to_o seek_v out_o such_o to_o serve_v he_o as_o fear_v god_n psal._n 101._o 1._o my_o eye_n shall_v be_v to_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o land_n that_o they_o may_v dwell_v with_o i_o he_o that_o walk_v in_o a_o perfect_a way_n he_o shall_v serve_v i_o this_o reason_n the_o lord_n oft_o use_v levit._n 19_o 2._o you_o shall_v be_v holy_a for_o i_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n be_o holy_a as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v because_o you_o be_v my_o servant_n my_o people_n you_o must_v frame_v yourselves_o to_o my_o disposition_n and_o seek_v to_o be_v like_o i_o the_o lord_n therefore_o be_v a_o spirit_n himself_o set_v his_o eye_n upon_o the_o spirit_n and_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o see_v how_o he_o be_v serve_v there_o 1._o samuel_n 16._o 7._o the_o lord_n look_v not_o as_o a_o man_n look_v for_o man_n look_v on_o the_o outward_a appearance_n but_o the_o lord_n look_v on_o the_o heart_n his_o delight_n be_v to_o have_v service_n do_v to_o he_o with_o the_o spirit_n and_o heart_n behold_v thou_o desire_v truth_n in_o the_o inward_a part_n say_v david_n psalm_n 51._o 6._o let_v the_o adorn_v of_o a_o christian_a say_v the_o apostle_n 1._o pet._n 3._o 4._o be_v the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n in_o that_o which_o be_v not_o corruptible_a even_o the_o ornament_n of_o a_o meek_a and_o quiet_a spirit_n which_o be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n of_o great_a price_n so_o that_o he_o that_o think_v a_o ceremonial_a and_o bodily_a worship_n will_v content_v the_o lord_n do_v judge_v erroneous_o of_o his_o nature_n and_o indeed_o make_v a_o idol_n and_o a_o false_a god_n of_o he_o but_o it_o may_v be_v object_v that_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o consequence_n object_n in_o this_o reason_n the_o true_a worshipper_n must_v now_o after_o christ_n ascension_n worship_n god_n in_o a_o more_o spiritual_a manner_n than_o they_o have_v do_v under_o the_o law_n because_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n for_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n then_o also_o as_o well_o as_o now_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o and_o therefore_o he_o always_o require_v to_o be_v worship_v in_o spirit_n for_o even_o to_o they_o under_o answ._n the_o law_n it_o be_v say_v deuteronomie_n 10._o 16._o circumcise_v the_o foreskin_n of_o your_o heart_n and_o hosea_n 6._o 6._o i_o desire_v mercy_n and_o not_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n more_o than_o burn_a offering_n but_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v more_o clear_o reveal_v himself_o now_o to_o be_v a_o spirit_n to_o be_v of_o a_o spiritual_a nature_n than_o he_o do_v under_o the_o law_n so_o he_o require_v spiritual_a worship_n of_o his_o people_n now_o more_o than_o he_o do_v under_o the_o law_n then_o god_n reveal_v himself_o to_o his_o people_n in_o many_o sensible_a apparition_n vision_n and_o voice_n have_v respect_n therein_o to_o the_o infirmity_n of_o his_o church_n while_o she_o be_v in_o her_o childhood_n we_o know_v the_o lord_n appear_v to_o abraham_n in_o the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n and_o talk_v familiar_o with_o he_o as_o one_o friend_n do_v with_o another_o gen._n 18._o 28._o and_o in_o a_o vision_n to_o ezekiel_n he_o appear_v in_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o man_n sit_v upon_o a_o throne_n ezek._n 1._o 26._o so_o with_o a_o audible_a and_o sensible_a voice_n he_o deliver_v the_o law_n unto_o his_o people_n deut._n 5._o 26._o
so_o usual_a a_o course_n with_o they_o that_o when_o our_o saviour_n see_v they_o confer_v and_o question_v among_o themselves_o about_o somewhat_o that_o he_o have_v teach_v touch_v his_o ascension_n it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o know_v they_o will_v ask_v he_o and_o therefore_o he_o prevent_v they_o and_o tell_v they_o un-asked_n joh._n 16._o 19_o when_o he_o have_v teach_v the_o parable_n of_o the_o sour_a they_o when_o he_o be_v alone_o ask_v he_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o mar._n 4._o 10._o so_o when_o teach_v against_o the_o jewish_a purification_n he_o have_v say_v that_o that_o enter_v into_o a_o man_n defile_v he_o not_o but_o that_o that_o come_v from_o within_o he_o when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o house_n away_o from_o the_o people_n they_o ask_v he_o the_o meaning_n of_o it_o mark_v 7._o 17._o so_o when_o he_o have_v teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o divorce_n very_o plain_o yet_o when_o he_o come_v into_o the_o house_n they_o ask_v he_o again_o of_o the_o matter_n they_o will_v needs_o have_v a_o repetition_n of_o that_o doctrine_n mar._n 10._o 10._o 3._o he_o have_v make_v himself_o so_o familiar_a to_o they_o that_o way_n that_o they_o be_v bold_a to_o make_v all_o their_o doubt_n know_v unto_o he_o though_o in_o some_o of_o they_o they_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o incur_v just_a blame_n for_o their_o shameful_a ignorance_n and_o infidelity_n when_o they_o see_v the_o man_n that_o be_v bear_v blind_a they_o ask_v he_o a_o strange_a question_n joh_n 9_o 3._o be_v it_o this_o man_n sin_n or_o his_o parent_n that_o be_v the_o cause_n when_o they_o see_v he_o have_v cast_v satan_n out_o of_o one_o that_o have_v be_v possess_v from_o his_o childhood_n mark_v 9_o 28._o when_o he_o be_v come_v into_o the_o house_n his_o disciple_n ask_v he_o secret_o why_o they_o can_v not_o cast_v he_o out_o such_o question_n they_o dare_v never_o have_v move_v if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v very_o familiar_a with_o he_o but_o indeed_o though_o he_o be_v their_o lord_n and_o master_n and_o take_v it_o upon_o he_o and_o know_v how_o to_o maintain_v his_o honour_n in_o their_o heart_n well_o enough_o john_n 13._o 13._o you_o call_v i_o master_n and_o lord_n and_o you_o say_v well_o for_o so_o i_o be_o yet_o do_v he_o give_v they_o great_a encouragement_n and_o make_v they_o very_o bold_a with_o he_o that_o way_n one_o notable_a example_n more_o i_o will_v give_v you_o for_o this_o john_n 16._o 5._o now_o i_o go_v my_o way_n to_o he_o that_o send_v i_o and_o none_o of_o you_o ask_v i_o whither_o go_v thou_o 1._o he_o blame_v they_o for_o not_o ask_v he_o 2._o yet_o they_o have_v ask_v he_o that_o very_a question_n before_o peter_n john_n 13._o 36._o and_o thomas_n john_n 14._o 5._o lord_n we_o know_v not_o whither_o thou_o go_v but_o his_o meaning_n be_v they_o have_v not_o ask_v he_o often_o enough_o of_o that_o matter_n whereas_o friend_n be_v wont_a to_o move_v many_o question_n to_o a_o friend_n that_o be_v go_v from_o they_o into_o a_o far_a country_n they_o be_v so_o overcome_v with_o grief_n by_o hear_v of_o his_o departure_n that_o they_o be_v too_o mute_a and_o move_v not_o half_a question_n enough_o to_o he_o about_o that_o matter_n a_o notable_a pattern_n for_o every_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o show_v himself_o stately_a or_o austere_a or_o churlish_a or_o strange_a to_o any_o of_o his_o hearer_n that_o shall_v be_v willing_a to_o make_v use_n of_o he_o that_o way_n this_o be_v so_o that_o at_o other_o time_n and_o in_o other_o case_n they_o be_v so_o ready_a to_o ask_v he_o any_o thing_n they_o doubt_v of_o how_o fall_v it_o out_o that_o at_o this_o time_n though_o they_o marvel_v at_o it_o yet_o no_o man_n ask_v he_o why_o he_o talk_v with_o this_o woman_n may_v not_o this_o have_v be_v as_o profitable_a a_o question_n as_o many_o other_o that_o they_o propound_v to_o he_o sure_o they_o know_v they_o have_v offend_v in_o entertain_v in_o their_o mind_n the_o least_o dislike_n of_o that_o that_o christ_n do_v or_o doubt_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n or_o fitness_n of_o it_o and_o they_o know_v that_o by_o utter_v their_o dislike_n they_o shall_v have_v offend_v in_o a_o further_a degree_n and_o therefore_o they_o dare_v not_o do_v it_o though_o they_o have_v offend_v in_o think_v irreverent_o and_o undutiful_o yet_o they_o dare_v not_o speak_v and_o why_o dare_v they_o not_o do_v it_o what_o restrain_v they_o from_o utter_v that_o which_o they_o have_v conceive_v in_o their_o mind_n sure_o the_o reverence_n they_o bear_v to_o his_o person_n because_o they_o know_v he_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o fear_n of_o god_n restrain_v they_o here_o than_o we_o have_v to_o observe_v two_o notable_a effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o true_a fear_n of_o god_n 1._o general_n it_o restrain_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o keep_v it_o under_o 2._o in_o special_a it_o restrain_v a_o man_n from_o call_v into_o question_n or_o speak_v irreverent_o of_o any_o of_o the_o word_n or_o work_n of_o god_n the_o first_o doctrine_n than_o be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v a_o increase_n and_o a_o further_a degree_n of_o sin_n and_o a_o worse_a sign_n of_o a_o graceless_a man_n to_o speak_v then_o to_o think_v evil_a 3._o true_a it_o be_v that_o every_o man_n must_v make_v conscience_n of_o his_o thought_n keep_v thy_o heart_n with_o all_o diligence_n pro._n 4._o 23._o for_o 1._o man_n may_v be_v condemn_v for_o their_o thought_n the_o thought_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n pro._n 15._o 26._o 2._o no_o man_n can_v make_v conscience_n of_o his_o word_n or_o work_n that_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o his_o thought_n matth._n 12._o 34._o how_o can_v you_o be_v evil_a speak_v good_a thing_n jer._n 4._o 14._o oh_o jerusalem_n wash_v thy_o heart_n from_o wickedness_n that_o thou_o may_v be_v save_v how_o long_o shall_v vain_a thought_n lodge_v within_o thou_o 3._o good_a man_n that_o obtain_v strength_n from_o god_n to_o restrain_v the_o outward_a man_n yet_o be_v vex_v and_o humble_v much_o for_o the_o evil_a thought_n they_o be_v subject_a to_o but_o yet_o evil_a word_n and_o action_n be_v worse_o than_o evil_a thought_n and_o it_o be_v a_o increase_n and_o a_o further_a degree_n of_o sin_n a_o great_a sign_n of_o a_o graceless_a heart_n to_o speak_v then_o to_o think_v evil_a certain_a it_o be_v there_o be_v a_o latitude_n in_o sin_n there_o be_v degree_n in_o it_o four_o degree_n be_v mention_v james_n 1._o 14_o 15._o 1._o the_o motion_n and_o suggestion_n unto_o sin_n which_o proceed_v from_o our_o own_o lust_n and_o concupiscence_n 2._o the_o consent_n that_o be_v give_v unto_o that_o evil_a motion_n when_o a_o man_n be_v draw_v away_o by_o it_o and_o entice_v find_v a_o kind_n of_o pleasure_n and_o contentment_n in_o it_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o conception_n of_o sin_n 3._o the_o commit_v of_o it_o actual_o which_o he_o call_v the_o bring_v forth_o and_o birth_n of_o sin_n 4._o the_o get_n of_o a_o habit_n by_o continue_v and_o persist_v in_o it_o which_o he_o call_v the_o finish_n of_o sin_n while_o sin_n be_v in_o the_o thought_n it_o keep_v itself_o within_o the_o two_o first_o degree_n pro._n 30._o 32._o if_o thou_o have_v be_v foolish_a in_o lift_v thyself_o up_o viz._n in_o choler_n or_o desire_n of_o revenge_n verse_n 34._o and_o if_o thou_o have_v think_v wicked_o lay_v thy_o hand_n upon_o thy_o mouth_n so_o be_v it_o speak_v of_o isaiah_n 59_o ●…3_n we_o have_v speak_v cruelty_n and_o oppression_n conceive_v and_o utter_v out_o of_o the_o heart_n false_a matter_n this_o be_v note_v for_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o sin_n in_o great_a man_n micah_n 7._o 3._o the_o great_a man_n speak_v out_o of_o the_o corruption_n of_o his_o soul_n they_o tempt_v god_n in_o their_o heart_n by_o ask_v meat_n for_o their_o lust_n yea_o they_o speak_v against_o god_n they_o say_v can_v god_n furnish_v a_o table_n in_o the_o wilderness_n psal._n 78._o 18_o 19_o reason_n of_o the_o doctrine_n why_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o great_a increase_n of_o sin_n and_o worse_a sign_n of_o a_o graceless_a man_n when_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o heart_n break_v out_o into_o word●…_n action_n be_v chief_o these_o two_o first_o it_o argue_v that_o sin_n have_v get_v a_o more_o full_a dominion_n and_o sovereignty_n 1_o over_o a_o man_n be_v ripe_a and_o perfect_a when_o it_o command_v the_o body_n and_o outward_a man_n then_o when_o it_o rest_v within_o the_o heart_n there_o be_v no_o man_n can_v possible_o free_v his_o heart_n from_o corruption_n in_o this_o life_n pro._n 20._o 9_o who_o can_v say_v i_o have_v make_v my_o
condemnation_n if_o 〈◊〉_d say_v the_o apostle_n 1._o pet._n 4_o 11._o let_v he_o speak_v as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d be_v usual_o a_o slander_n many_o will_v object_v against_o the_o preacher_n thus_o i_o know_v he_o mean_v i_o yea_o he_o so●…spake_v as_o many_o in_o the_o church_n know_v he_o mean_v i_o and_o what_o call_v you_o this_o but_o malice_n if_o he_o have_v love_v i_o he_o will_v have_v tell_v i_o in_o private_a to_o these_o man_n i_o say_v 1._o a_o minister_n be_v not_o bind_v in_o reprove_v sin_n to_o beat_v the_o air_n but_o he_o may_v in_o his_o reproof_n mean_a and_o intend_v to_o touch_v such_o as_o hear_v he_o yea_o it_o be_v his_o duty_n to_o bring_v his_o doctrine_n home_o as_o particular_o as_o he_o can_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o one_o that_o hear_v he_o like_o a_o good_a steward_n to_o give_v unto_o every_o one_o his_o own_o portion_n luke_n 12._o 42._o 2._o admit_v he_o have_v speak_v out_o of_o malice_n yet_o if_o he_o have_v speak_v nothing_o but_o upon_o good_a warrant_n of_o god_n word_n and_o thy_o heart_n be_v so_o disquiet_v by_o it_o sure_o thy_o case_n be_v fearful_a god_n people_n have_v ever_o be_v wont_a to_o find_v comfort_n in_o his_o word_n even_o in_o that_o part_n of_o it_o that_o have_v most_o gall_v they_o by_o discover_v to_o they_o their_o sin_n let_v the_o righteous_a smite_v i_o say_v david_n psal._n 141._o 5._o it_o shall_v be_v a_o kindness_n and_o let_v he_o reprove_v i_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o a_o excellent_a oil_n and_o thy_o heart_n tell_v thou_o thou_o feel_v no_o comfort_n in_o it_o but_o it_o vex_v thou_o so_o that_o be_v it_o not_o for_o such_o and_o such_o a_o alehouse_n where_o thou_o may_v find_v company_n of_o thy_o own_o mind_n that_o will_v take_v thy_o part_n in_o rail_v and_o scorn_v of_o the_o preacher_n thou_o shall_v not_o know_v what_o to_o do_v sure_o thy_o case_n be_v fearful_a if_o thou_o have_v any_o grace_n in_o thy_o heart_n the_o word_n of_o god_n will_v not_o be_v so_o bitter_a unto_o thou_o do_v not_o my_o word_n say_v the_o lord_n mic._n 2._o 7._o do_v good_a to_o he_o that_o walk_v upright_o do_v they_o not_o do_v he_o good_a at_o the_o heart_n do_v they_o not_o cheer_v and_o comfort_v he_o and_o because_o thou_o may_v the_o better_o discern_v of_o thy_o own_o case_n in_o another_o man_n person_n then_o in_o thy_o own_o i_o will_v show_v thou_o in_o a_o few_o example_n what_o thy_o state_n be_v cain_n be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o thou_o be_v for_o he_o because_o he_o can_v not_o be_v as_o well_o accept_v as_o well_o think_v on_o for_o his_o religion_n as_o his_o brother_n be_v gen._n 4._o 5._o go_v away_o from_o god_n worship_n in_o a_o rage_n and_o hi●…_n countenance_n fall_v down_o ahab_n be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o thou_o be_v for_o he_o because_o eliah_n and_o micaiah_n deal_v faithful_o with_o he_o in_o their_o ministry_n and_o effectual_o discover_v to_o he_o his_o sin_n go_v never_o from_o their_o ministry_n but_o with_o a_o discontent_a and_o vex_a heart_n he_o count_v they_o his_o enemy_n and_o hate_v they_o 1._o king_n 21._o ●…0_n and_o 22._o 8._o the_o man_n that_o be_v possess_v with_o a_o legion_n of_o devil_n be_v in_o thy_o case_n for_o he_o be_v in_o the_o synagogue_n where_o christ_n preach_v be_v torment_v by_o his_o ministry_n luke_n 4._o 33_o 34._o mar._n 5._o 79._o though_o christ_n have_v not_o speak_v to_o he_o in_o particular_a ever_o a_o word_n or_o once_o meddle_v with_o he_o final_o the_o curse_a jew_n that_o stone_v bless_a stephen_n to_o death_n be_v in_o thy_o case_n for_o when_o they_o hear_v stephen_n act_v 7._o 54._o they_o be_v cut_v to_o the_o heart_n and_o they_o gnash_v upon_o he_o with_o their_o tooth_n last_o this_o serve_v to_o discover_v the_o sin_n of_o such_o as_o be_v always_o discontent_v with_o the_o length_n of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o grudge_v that_o the_o lord_n shall_v have_v one_o whole_a day_n in_o a_o week_n allow_v unto_o he_o that_o will_v have_v the_o sabbath_n day_n but_o four_o hour_n long_o at_o the_o most_o even_o no_o long_o than_o the_o time_n be_v that_o be_v spend_v at_o church_n upon_o that_o day_n that_o say_v in_o their_o heart_n as_o amos_n 8._o 5._o when_o will_v the_o sabbath_n be_v do_v that_o we_o may_v set_v forth_o wheat_n make_v the_o ephah_n small_a and_o the_o shekell_n great_a and_o with_o they_o mal._n 1._o 3._o behold_v what_o a_o weariness_n be_v it_o what_o a_o tedious_a thing_n be_v it_o to_o keep_v a_o sabbath_n for_o a_o whole_a day_n whereas_o god_n have_v express_o command_v exod_v 20._o 10._o that_o on_o the_o seven_o 〈◊〉_d shall_v do_v no_o manner_n of_o work_n but_o keep_v it_o holy_a unto_o he_o 〈◊〉_d give_v six_o day_n to_o do_v all_o that_o we_o have_v to_o do_v in_o and_o even_o on_o the_o sabbath_n on_o his_o own_o seven_o part_n of_o the_o week_n allow_v we_o to_o do_v work_n of_o present_a necessity_n and_o what_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n why_o the_o sabbath_n seem_v to_o we_o so_o long_o a_o day_n above_o any_o other_o sure_o because_o we_o take_v no_o delight_n in_o it_o nor_o in_o the_o work_n and_o duty_n of_o it_o we_o do_v not_o call_v the_o sabbath_n a_o delight_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v isaiah_n 58._o 1●…_n the_o second_o use_n that_o this_o which_o we_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o second_o property_n 2._o of_o 〈◊〉_d zeal_n serve_v unto_o be_v to_o exhort_v all_o god_n servant_n to_o strive_v against_o that_o uncheerefulnesse_n that_o they_o be_v so_o much_o subject_n unto_o and_o to_o labour_v to_o serve_v god_n with_o joy_n and_o gladness_n of_o heart_n say_v unto_o thy_o soul_n as_o david_n do_v psal_n 42._o 11._o why_o be_v thou_o so_o heavy_a o_o my_o soul_n and_o why_o be_v thou_o so_o disquiet_v within_o i_o know_v thou_o that_o even_o when_o thou_o have_v most_o cause_n to_o be_v humble_v and_o deject_a in_o thyself_o through_o any_o affliction_n either_o outward_a or_o inward_a yet_o even_o then_o thou_o be_v bind_v to_o strive_v against_o thy_o uncheerefulnesse_n when_o thou_o go_v to_o do_v any_o service_n unto_o god_n even_o in_o thy_o tremble_n thou_o shall_v rejoice_v psal._n 2._o 11._o consider_v with_o thyself_o how_o great_a reason_n thou_o have_v to_o do_v so_o 1._o no_o service_n please_v god_n so_o well_o as_o that_o which_o his_o people_n do_v perform_v cheerful_o and_o with_o joy_n deut._n 28._o 47_o 48._o because_o thou_o serve_v not_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o joyfulness_n and_o with_o gladness_n of_o heart_n for_o the_o abundance_n of_o all_o thing_n therefore_o thou_o shall_v serve_v thy_o enemy_n which_o the_o lord_n shall_v send_v against_o thou_o 2._o the_o lord_n be_v not_o so_o strict_a and_o severe_a as_o to_o reject_v the_o service_n that_o with_o a_o good_a heart_n we_o do_v unto_o he_o for_o the_o infirmity_n and_o fail_n that_o he_o do_v discern_v in_o it_o but_o delight_n in_o it_o notwithstanding_o let_v i_o hear_v thy_o voice_n for_o sweet_a be_v thy_o voice_n cant._n 2._o 14._o and_o this_o be_v a_o just_a cause_n of_o encouragement_n to_o all_o that_o fear_n god_n not_o only_o to_o do_v service_n unto_o he_o but_o to_o do_v it_o cheerful_o and_o with_o gladness_n of_o heart_n as_o for_o i_o say_v david_n psal._n 5._o 7._o i_o will_v come_v into_o thy_o house_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o mercy_n and_o 130._o 3._o 4._o if_o thou_o lord_n shall_v mark_v iniquity_n o_o lord_n who_o shall_v stand_v but_o there_o be_v forgiveness_n with_o thou_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v fear_v 3._o thou_o have_v cause_n to_o doubt_v the_o soundness_n of_o thy_o heart_n if_o thou_o can_v find_v no_o sweetness_n nor_o comfort_n in_o god_n word_n and_o worship_n for_o of_o the_o godly_a and_o upright-hearted_n it_o be_v oft_o note_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v sweet_a to_o they_o then_o the_o honey_n or_o the_o honey_n comb_n psalm_n 9_o 10._o that_o they_o rejoice_v because_o with_o a_o upright_o heart_n they_o have_v offer_v willing_o unto_o the_o lord_n 1._o chron._n 29._o 9_o the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v glad_a in_o the_o lord_n and_o shall_v trust_v in_o he_o and_o all_o the_o upright_o in_o heart_n shall_v glory_v psal._n 64._o 10._o lecture_n the_o eight_o and_o fifty_o july_n 17._o 1610._o john_n four_o xxxii_o xxxiv_o follow_v the_o three_o property_n of_o true_a zeal_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o this_o example_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n he_o that_o have_v true_a zeal_n rejoice_v in_o the_o zeal_n and_o forwardness_n of_o other_o for_o this_o be_v as_o we_o hear_v one_o cause_n that_o make_v our_o saviour_n to_o forget_v both_o hunger_n
able_a and_o a_o faithful_a ministry_n that_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o prophet_n of_o god_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v call_v the_o chariot_n and_o horseman_n of_o israel_n 2._o king_n 2._o 12._o the_o chief_a strength_n and_o munition_n that_o israel_n have_v so_o when_o the_o levite_n that_o flee_v from_o the_o ten_o tribe_n receive_v entertainment_n under_o the_o government_n of_o rhehoboam_n and_o exercise_v their_o ministry_n there_o it_o be_v say_v express_o 2._o chron._n 11._o 17._o that_o they_o strengthen_v the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n and_o make_v rhehoboam_n the_o son_n of_o solomon_n mighty_a and_o when_o jehosaphat_n have_v send_v preacher_n to_o all_o the_o city_n of_o juda_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n 2._o chron._n 17._o 9_o it_o be_v immediate_o add_v verse_n 10._o that_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n fall_v upon_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o land_n that_o be_v round_o about_o juda_n and_o they_o fight_v not_o against_o jehosaphat_n and_o there_o be_v two_o reason_n for_o this_o that_o no_o wit_n of_o man_n be_v able_a to_o gainsay_v first_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o land_n be_v the_o bane_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n the_o only_a thing_n that_o bring_v ruin_n upon_o a_o state_n for_o the_o transgression_n of_o a_o land_n many_o be_v the_o prince_n thereof_o pro._n 28._o 2._o and_o there_o be_v no_o such_o mean_a to_o restrain_v man_n from_o sin_n as_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n no_o law_n of_o man_n can_v do_v it_o because_o it_o can_v work_v upon_o the_o conscience_n the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n will_v do_v it_o when_o it_o be_v back_v and_o countenance_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n second_o the_o strength_n and_o prosperity_n of_o a_o kingdom_n consist_v in_o this_o when_o superior_n rule_v well_o and_o inferior_n obey_v well_o and_o equal_n live_v just_o and_o love_o together_o now_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n where_o it_o be_v back_v and_o countenance_v by_o the_o magistrate_n will_v cause_v man_n to_o do_v this_o and_o to_o do_v it_o even_o out_o of_o conscience_n to_o god_n which_o be_v the_o strong_a band_n of_o all_o other_o you_o shall_v fear_v every_o man_n his_o mother_n she_o be_v name_v first_o because_o child_n be_v most_o apt_a to_o neglect_v their_o duty_n to_o she_o and_o his_o father_n and_o as_o a_o mean_a thereof_o keep_v my_o sabbaths_n levit._n 19_o 3._o and_o therefore_o to_o conclude_v magistrates_n and_o great_a man_n can_v no_o way_n better_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v indeed_o father_n of_o their_o country_n and_o good_a common-wealths-man_n than_o first_o by_o place_v able_a minister_n in_o all_o place_n where_o they_o have_v to_o do_v as_o jehosaphat_n do_v 2._o chron._n 17._o 9_o and_o second_o by_o countenance_v and_o give_v encouragement_n to_o good_a minister_n by_o all_o good_a mean_n as_o hezekiah_n do_v 2._o chron._n 30._o 22._o the_o three_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v for_o exhortation_n that_o every_o one_o of_o we_o 3._o will_v submit_v ourselves_o in_o practice_n to_o this_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o be_v persuade_v it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o great_a necessity_n to_o live_v under_o a_o good_a ministry_n to_o hear_v and_o to_o hear_v often_o three_o reason_n there_o be_v which_o if_o we_o can_v weigh_v they_o well_o will_v move_v we_o to_o it_o first_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v it_o a_o mark_n whereby_o he_o may_v be_v know_v who_o god_n have_v elect_v unto_o life_n to_o be_v willing_a and_o desirous_a to_o hear_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n john_n 10._o 27._o and_o the_o contrary_a a_o mark_n of_o a_o reprobate_n you_o therefore_o hear_v not_o god_n word_n because_o you_o be_v not_o of_o god_n joh._n 8._o 47._o a_o great_a sin_n than_o the_o sin_n of_o sodom_n matth._n 10._o 14_o 15._o second_o because_o every_o man_n have_v cause_n to_o suspect_v that_o the_o good_a thing_n that_o seem_v to_o be_v in_o he_o be_v but_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o not_o of_o the_o spirit_n if_o he_o come_v not_o by_o they_o by_o this_o mean_n for_o a_o mere_a natural_a man_n may_v have_v many_o good_a thing_n in_o he_o as_o remnant_n of_o god_n image_n and_o do_v many_o good_a thing_n the_o gentile_n which_o have_v not_o the_o law_n do_v by_o nature_n the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n rom._n 2._o 14._o but_o the_o only_a mean_n of_o regeneration_n be_v the_o word_n preach_v be_v bear_v again_o not_o of_o corruptible_a seed_n but_o of_o incorruptible_a by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 1._o pet._n 1._o 23._o and_o this_o be_v the_o word_n which_o by_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v unto_o you_o ver_fw-la 25._o therefore_o be_v it_o so_o express_o note_v of_o those_o church_n and_o person_n who_o conversion_n the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v testimony_n unto_o that_o they_o be_v convert_v by_o preach_v observe_v this_o in_o all_o the_o church_n and_o person_n that_o the_o apostle_n write_v their_o epistle_n unto_o the_o roman_n be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o be_v convert_v by_o peter_n ministry_n act_v 2._o 10._o the_o corinthian_n be_v beget_v anew_o by_o paul_n ministry_n 1._o cor._n 4._o 15._o the_o galatian_n receive_v the_o spirit_n by_o the_o hear_n of_o faith_n the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n preach_v gal._n 3._o 2._o the_o ephesian_n trust_v in_o christ_n after_o that_o they_o have_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o not_o before_o ephes._n 1._o 13._o the_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o philippian_n they_o have_v receive_v by_o hear_v of_o paul_n phil._n 4._o 9_o the_o colossian_n bring_v forth_o no_o fruit_n unto_o god_n till_o the_o gospel_n come_v to_o they_o and_o they_o have_v hear_v it_o preach_v by_o epaphras_n col._n 1._o 6_o 7._o the_o thessalonian_n be_v win_v to_o god_n by_o paul_n ministry_n 1._o thess._n 2._o 13._o timothy_n be_v beget_v to_o god_n by_o paul_n ministry_n 1._o tim._n 1._o 2._o and_o so_o be_v titus_n tit._n 1._o 4._o and_o so_o be_v philemon_n phil._n 1._o 9_o the_o christian_a hebrew_n be_v require_v to_o follow_v the_o faith_n of_o they_o that_o have_v speak_v to_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n heb._n 13._o 7._o and_o they_o to_o who_o the_o apostle_n james_n do_v write_v be_v beget_v by_o god_n through_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n james_n 1._o 18._o and_o so_o be_v they_o to_o who_o the_o apostle_n peter_n write_v 1._o pet._n 1._o 23._o and_o those_o to_o who_o john_n write_v have_v that_o grace_n which_o he_o desire_v shall_v abide_v in_o they_o by_o hear_v 1._o joh._n 2._o 24._o the_o good_a thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o elect_a lady_n and_o her_o child_n be_v wrought_v in_o they_o by_o johns_n ministry_n 2._o john_n 8._o and_o gaius_n be_v one_o of_o his_o child_n also_o 3._o joh._n 4._o and_o the_o faith_n full_a unto_o who_o jude_n write_v have_v be_v hearer_n of_o the_o apostle_n jude_n 17._o three_o whatsoever_o a_o man_n state_n and_o condition_n be_v he_o have_v need_n to_o hear_v first_o such_o as_o be_v both_o ignorant_a and_o void_a of_o sense_n and_o care_n of_o their_o salvation_n for_o this_o be_v the_o mean_n to_o open_v their_o eye_n and_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n act._n 26._o 18._o second_o such_o as_o have_v already_o good_a affection_n and_o desire_n for_o they_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o perish_v not_o withstand_v their_o good_a desire_n if_o they_o be_v not_o instruct_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o comparison_n our_o saviour_n use_v here_o joh._n 4._o 35._o which_o i_o open_v unto_o you_o even_o now_o three_o such_o as_o have_v attain_v to_o a_o good_a measure_n of_o knowledge_n for_o knowledge_n without_o faith_n avail_v not_o and_o this_o be_v the_o only_a mean_n to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o we_o know_v rome_n 10._o 14._o four_o such_o as_o have_v both_o knowledge_n and_o good_a affection_n and_o true_a faith_n and_o sanctification_n because_o these_o grace_n be_v imperfect_a in_o the_o best_a and_o will_v die_v if_o they_o grow_v not_o and_o be_v not_o nourish_v and_o this_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o growth_n and_o perseverance_n it_o be_v ordain_v for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n ephes._n 4._o 12._o the_o four_o use_n be_v to_o stir_v up_o the_o minister_n to_o diligence_n in_o his_o call_n to_o which_o he_o be_v tie_v by_o a_o double_a bond_n first_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o commandment_n 4._o of_o god_n necessity_n be_v lay_v upon_o i_o yea_o woe_n be_v unto_o i_o if_o i_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n 1._o cor._n 9_o 16._o second_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o people_n he_o be_v set_v as_o a_o watchman_n over_o god_n people_n etc._n etc._n ezek._n 33._o 6._o to_o this_o end_n it_o be_v
god_n he_o be_v a_o jealous_a god_n he_o will_v not_o forgive_v your_o transgression_n nor_o your_o sin_n dare_v never_o speak_v thus_o bold_o and_o familiar_o unto_o god_n if_o they_o be_v not_o certain_a of_o his_o favour_n and_o of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o their_o sin_n for_o that_o be_v the_o only_a ground_n of_o this_o boldness_n and_o familiarity_n with_o god_n heb._n 10._o 22._o let_v we_o draw_v near_o with_o a_o true_a heart_n in_o assurance_n of_o faith_n sprinkle_v in_o our_o heart_n from_o a_o evil_a conscience_n 4._o the_o four_o be_v willingness_n and_o desire_v to_o die_v faith_n free_v the_o heart_n from_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o make_v a_o man_n willing_a yea_o desirous_a to_o die_v this_o we_o shall_v observe_v in_o sundry_a of_o the_o martyr_n that_o when_o death_n have_v come_v to_o they_o in_o his_o most_o ugly_a shape_n they_o have_v not_o fear_v he_o but_o insult_v over_o he_o and_o as_o eliphaz_n say_v job_n 5._o 22._o they_o have_v laugh_v at_o destruction_n thus_o paul_n bring_v in_o the_o faithful_a defy_v and_o insult_v over_o death_n 1._o cor._n 15._o 55._o o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n verse_n 57_o thank_n be_v unto_o god_n which_o have_v give_v we_o victory_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n yea_o they_o have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o fear_v death_n that_o they_o have_v embrace_v it_o when_o it_o come_v and_o desire_v it_o earnest_o this_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o simeon_n so_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v see_v christ_n he_o burst_v out_o into_o this_o prayer_n unto_o god_n luk._n 2._o 29._o now_o let_v thou_o thy_o servant_n depart_v in_o peace_n according_a to_o thy_o word_n and_o paul_n phil._n 1._o 23._o i_o desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n which_o be_v best_a of_o all_o yea_o he_o make_v this_o the_o disposition_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a 2._o cor._n 5._o 〈◊〉_d therefore_o we_o sigh_v as_o those_o that_o bear_v a_o great_a burden_n vers_n 4._o desire_v to_o be_v clothe_v with_o our_o house_n which_o be_v from_o heaven_n and_o indeed_o there_o be_v never_o a_o faithful_a man_n but_o though_o he_o find_v in_o himself_o sometime_o a_o fear_n of_o death_n yet_o before_o he_o go_v from_o hence_o his_o faith_n will_v free_v he_o from_o this_o fear_n and_o make_v he_o willing_a and_o desirous_a to_o die_v mark_v the_o perfect_a man_n and_o behold_v the_o upright_o for_o the_o end_n of_o that_o man_n be_v peace_n psal._n 37._o 37._o now_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a the_o faithful_a shall_v thus_o be_v free_v from_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n shall_v thus_o desire_v to_o die_v see_v they_o know_v heb._n 2._o 14._o that_o satan_n have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n and_o heb._n 9_o 27._o after_o death_n come_v judgement_n if_o they_o be_v not_o full_o assure_v of_o their_o salvation_n and_o this_o reason_n the_o apostle_n give_v 2._o cor._n 5._o 6._o 8._o therefore_o we_o be_v always_o confident_a know_v that_o while_o we_o be_v at_o home_n in_o the_o body_n we_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o lord_n we_o be_v confident_a i_o say_v and_o willing_a rather_o to_o be_v absent_a from_o the_o body_n and_o to_o be_v present_a with_o the_o lord_n lecture_n the_o seventie_o four_o december_n 4._o 1610._o john_n four_o xlii_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v unto_o you_o that_o by_o faith_n a_o man_n may_v be_v assure_v and_o certain_o persuade_v of_o his_o salvation_n both_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o by_o the_o effect_n it_o work_v in_o the_o heart_n that_o have_v receive_v it_o now_o let_v we_o we_o come_v to_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o that_o have_v faith_n may_v be_v so_o certain_a and_o assure_v of_o their_o salvation_n yea_o can_v but_o be_v certain_a of_o it_o and_o the_o first_o reason_n be_v because_o this_o persuasion_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n word_n that_o can_v deceive_v they_o therefore_o there_o be_v certainty_n 1_o in_o it_o may_v not_o a_o man_n be_v full_o assure_v of_o that_o which_o he_o have_v god_n word_n for_o there_o be_v no_o such_o certainty_n in_o the_o knowledge_n that_o be_v get_v by_o sense_n observation_n experience_n or_o any_o other_o way_n as_o in_o that_o that_o be_v ground_v upon_o god_n word_n ●…sal_n 93._o 5._o thy_o testimony_n be_v very_o sure_a say_v david_n now_o the_o true_a believer_n do_v not_o build_v his_o persuasion_n upon_o any_o deceivable_a fancy_n but_o upon_o god_n word_n only_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o elect_n be_v therefore_o call_v the_o faith_n of_o truth_n 2._o thess._n 2._o 13._o and_o the_o word_n be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n rome_n 10._o 8._o therefore_o say_v david_n speak_v of_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o confidence_n psal._n ●…0_n 10._o i_o will_v rejoice_v in_o god_n because_o of_o his_o word_n in_o the_o lord_n will_v i_o rejoice_v because_o of_o his_o word_n and_o psal._n 130._o 5._o i_o have_v wait_v on_o the_o lord_n my_o soul_n have_v wait_v and_o i_o have_v trust_v in_o his_o word_n if_o a_o man_n can_v prove_v by_o god_n word_n that_o christ_n die_v for_o he_o that_o his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v that_o he_o be_v one_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v his_o persuasion_n of_o it_o be_v but_o a_o fancy_n it_o be_v no_o faith_n he_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n or_o certainty_n of_o it_o special_o in_o the_o time_n of_o tentation_n sa●…han_n will_v be_v beat_v back_o no_o way_n but_o by_o this_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n ephes_n 6._o 17._o as_o christ_n resist_v he_o matth._n 4._o 4._o 7._o 10._o so_o must_v we_o but_o if_o a_o man_n can_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n that_o christ_n die_v for_o he_o that_o his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v then_o may_v he_o be_v full_o assure_v indeed_o then_o shall_v he_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o doubt_v of_o it_o now_o god_n have_v give_v we_o his_o word_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o this_o and_o put_v we_o out_o of_o doubt_n in_o this_o matter_n the_o apostle_n make_v this_o the_o reason_n why_o god_n make_v a_o new_a covenant_n with_o we_o abolish_v the_o covenant_n of_o work_n and_o give_v we_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o promise_v eternal_a life_n upon_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o not_o of_o work_n that_o the_o promise_n may_v be_v sure_a to_o all_o the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n rom._n 4._o 16._o not_o sure_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n for_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o old_a covenant_n but_o sure_a to_o the_o believer_n and_o john_n say_v 1._o john_n 5._o 13._o these_o thing_n have_v i_o write_v to_o you_o that_o believe_v that_o you_o may_v know_v you_o have_v eternal_a life_n and_o 1._o john_n 1._o 4._o these_o thing_n write_v we_o unto_o you_o that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a why_o but_o will_v you_o say_v who_o can_v bring_v any_o word_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v write_v that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o christ_n shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v life_n everlasting_a john_n 3._o 16._o and_o verse_n 36_o he_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o therefore_o he_o that_o can_v say_v he_o be_v sure_a he_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n as_o every_o faithful_a man_n can_v have_v god_n express_a word_n to_o assure_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v now_o a_o man_n that_o have_v faith_n may_v by_o the_o fruit_n of_o it_o certain_o know_v that_o he_o have_v it_o indeed_o this_o be_v evident_a by_o 2._o corinthian_n 13._o 5._o prove_v yourselves_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n examine_v yourselves_o know_v you_o not_o your_o own_o self_n how_o that_o christ_n jesus_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n the_o second_o reason_n why_o they_o that_o have_v faith_n may_v be_v so_o certain_a of_o their_o salvation_n be_v because_o their_o faith_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o testimony_n 2._o of_o god_n spirit_n that_o can_v deceive_v they_o 1._o john_n 2._o 27._o the_o anoint_v which_o you_o have_v receive_v of_o he_o abide_v in_o you_o and_o it_o be_v truth_n and_o be_v no_o lie_n now_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v give_v to_o the_o faithful_a to_o assure_v they_o of_o their_o salvation_n the_o spirit_n itself_o bear_v witness_v with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n rome_n 8._o 16._o 1._o john_n 3._o 14._o we_o know_v that_o we_o be_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n because_o we_o love_v the_o brethren_n he_o that_o have_v but_o that_o one_o grace_n may_v be_v sure_a of_o his_o salvation_n how_o much_o more_o he_o that_o have_v many_o and_o more_o special_a grace_n of_o god_n therefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v call_v
give_v a_o sweet_a relish_n to_o all_o god_n blessing_n joh._n 29._o 3._o 7._o job_n speak_v of_o the_o comfort_n he_o take_v in_o all_o god_n blessing_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o prosperity_n in_o the_o recreation_n and_o delight_n of_o his_o youth_n in_o his_o house_n in_o his_o child_n in_o his_o riches_n in_o the_o honour_n that_o god_n give_v he_o he_o allege_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o verse_n 3._o his_o light_n shine_v upon_o my_o head_n yea_o even_o in_o affliction_n it_o will_v make_v we_o comfortable_a rom._n 5._o 3._o neither_o do_v we_o so_o only_o but_o we_o rejoice_v in_o tribulation_n and_o without_o this_o we_o can_v have_v no_o true_a joy_n but_o either_o 2._o cor._n 5._o 12._o rejoice_n in_o the_o face_n not_o in_o the_o heart_n or_o for_o a_o very_a short_a moment_n our_o joy_n will_v be_v as_o eccles._n 7._o 8._o like_o the_o noise_n of_o thorn_n under_o the_o pot_n so_o be_v the_o laughter_n of_o fool_n three_o it_o will_v make_v we_o able_a to_o go_v to_o god_n in_o prayer_n at_o all_o time_n with_o boldness_n and_o delight_n job_n 23._o 26._o thou_o shall_v then_o delight_v in_o the_o almighty_a and_o lift_v up_o thy_o face_n unto_o god_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o that_o want_v this_o assurance_n can_v take_v no_o comfort_n or_o delight_n in_o prayer_n will_v he_o delight_v himself_o in_o the_o almighty_a will_v he_o always_o call_v upon_o god_n job_n 27._o 10._o four_o to_o conclude_v we_o have_v no_o true_a faith_n unless_o we_o strive_v for_o this_o assurance_n and_o what_o have_v we_o to_o yield_v we_o comfort_v in_o life_n or_o death_n if_o we_o be_v without_o faith_n without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n heb._n 11._o 6._o now_o though_o a_o man_n may_v have_v a_o true_a faith_n and_o yet_o so_o weak_a that_o he_o may_v want_v this_o assurance_n for_o a_o time_n or_o have_v it_o in_o great_a weakness_n yet_o without_o a_o mourning_n for_o and_o strive_v against_o our_o doubt_n without_o a_o seek_n for_o this_o certainty_n there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a faith_n in_o we_o the_o poor_a man_n who_o child_n be_v possess_v have_v much_o unbelief_n and_o doubt_v in_o he_o but_o he_o weep_v for_o it_o and_o cry_v to_o christ_n for_o help_v against_o it_o mar._n 9_o 24._o for_o god_n spirit_n wheresoever_o it_o be_v lust_v against_o the_o flesh_n gal._n 5._o 17._o that_o make_v the_o apostle_n say_v heb._n 3._o 6._o his_o house_n we_o be_v if_o we_o hold_v fast_o our_o confidence_n and_o the_o rejoice_v of_o our_o hope_n unto_o the_o end_n now_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o attain_v to_o this_o certain_a assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o of_o our_o salvation_n to_o keep_v it_o when_o we_o have_v it_o to_o recover_v it_o when_o we_o have_v lose_v it_o i_o will_v show_v you_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a mean_n whereby_o this_o may_v be_v obtain_v the_o first_o be_v to_o esteem_v high_o of_o it_o and_o account_v it_o our_o chief_a treasure_n and_o happiness_n for_o than_o our_o heart_n will_v be_v ever_o upon_o it_o than_o we_o will_v look_v to_o it_o and_o be_v afraid_a to_o lose_v it_o where_o your_o treasure_n be_v there_o will_v your_o heart_n be_v also_o matth._n 6._o 21._o the_o wise_a merchant_n when_o he_o have_v find_v the_o treasure_n and_o resolve_v to_o purchase_v it_o by_o part_v with_o all_o that_o he_o have_v do_v hide_v it_o so_o that_o he_o may_v not_o lose_v it_o matth._n 13._o 44._o the_o chief_a cause_n why_o many_o have_v so_o little_a assurance_n of_o their_o salvation_n be_v for_o that_o they_o make_v no_o reckon_n of_o it_o there_o be_v a_o thousand_o thing_n they_o regard_v more_o than_o it_o david_n make_v another_o manner_n of_o reckon_n of_o it_o psal._n 4._o 6._o many_o say_v who_o will_v show_v we_o any_o good_a but_o lord_n lift_v up_o the_o light_n of_o thy_o countenance_n upon_o us._n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v let_v i_o see_v it_o and_o be_v assure_v of_o it_o that_o will_v suffice_v i_o and_o 63._o 3._o thy_o love_a kindness_n be_v better_a than_o life_n and_o 80._o 7._o cause_o thy_o face_n to_o shine_v and_o we_o shall_v be_v save_v the_o second_o mean_n be_v to_o use_v diligent_o and_o conscionable_o the_o exercise_n 2._o of_o religion_n and_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n for_o they_o be_v all_o ordain_v of_o god_n to_o work_v this_o assurance_n in_o our_o heart_n first_o the_o reading_z of_o the_o word_n 1._o john_n 1._o 4._o these_o thing_n write_v we_o unto_o you_o that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v fu●…l_o second_o the_o hear_n of_o the_o word_n luke_n 1._o 77._o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n be_v ordain_v of_o god_n to_o give_v knowledge_n of_o salvation_n to_o his_o people_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n three_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o every_o sacrament_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v a_o seal_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o faith_n rom._n 4._o 11._o four_o prayer_n john_n 16._o 24._o ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a and_o this_o may_v be_v say_v general_o of_o all_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n therefore_o david_n give_v this_o for_o one_o reason_n why_o he_o do_v so_o desire_v to_o dwell_v in_o god_n house_n that_o he_o may_v behold_v the_o beauty_n of_o the_o lord_n psal._n 27._o 4._o a_o chief_a cause_n why_o many_o want_v this_o assurance_n be_v for_o that_o they_o use_v not_o these_o part_n of_o god_n worship_n constant_o and_o conscionable_o the_o three_o mean_n be_v to_o keep_v a_o good_a conscience_n careful_o pro._n 15._o 15._o a_o good_a conscience_n be_v a_o continual_a feast_n peace_n and_o confidence_n be_v oft_o ascribe_v 3._o to_o the_o practice_n of_o piety_n matth._n 7._o 24._o he_o that_o hear_v of_o i_o these_o word_n and_o do_v the_o same_o be_v like_a to_o he_o that_o build_v on_o a_o rock_n experience_n and_o practice_n of_o godliness_n be_v chief_a mean_n to_o work_v this_o full_a assurance_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 18_o 19_o charge_v they_o that_o be_v rich_a that_o they_o do_v good_a lay_v up_o in_o store_n for_o themselves_o a_o good_a foundation_n against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v that_o they_o may_v lay_v hold_n on_o eternal_a life_n 2._o pet._n 1._o 5._o join_v virtue_n with_o faith_n and_o with_o virtue_n knowledge_n temperance_n patience_n godliness_n brotherly_a kindness_n love_n then_o follow_v verse_n 10._o give_v diligence_n to_o make_v your_o call_n and_o election_n sure_a for_o if_o you_o do_v these_o thing_n you_o shall_v never_o fall_v and_o verse_n 11._o for_o by_o this_o mean_n a_o entrance_n shall_v be_v minister_v to_o you_o abundant_o into_o the_o everlasting_a kingdom_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ._n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o chief_a cause_n why_o many_o can_v never_o grow_v to_o any_o assurance_n and_o many_o have_v have_v it_o have_v lose_v it_o be_v the_o neglect_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n their_o fall_n into_o sin_n against_o their_o conscience_n i_o think_v this_o shall_v have_v great_a force_n to_o restrain_v man_n from_o sin_n see_v what_o ado_n god_n dear_a servant_n have_v have_v to_o recover_v their_o certainty_n and_o comfort_n when_o they_o have_v fall_v into_o foul_a sin_n psal._n 51._o 8._o make_v i_o to_o hear_v joy_n and_o gladness_n verse_n 11._o cast_v i_o not_o away_o from_o thy_o presence_n verse_n 12._o restore_v i_o to_o the_o joy_n of_o thy_o salvation_n the_o four_o mean_n be_v to_o observe_v our_o own_o way_n diligent_o and_o when_o we_o have_v slip_v into_o any_o sin_n to_o humble_v ourselves_o speedy_o before_o god_n in_o the_o sense_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o it_o and_o to_o seek_v peace_n with_o he_o this_o be_v a_o sure_a way_n to_o preserve_v our_o assurance_n job_n 13._o 15._o though_o he_o slay_v i_o i_o will_v put_v my_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o i_o will_v reprove_v my_o way_n in_o his_o sight_n psal._n 32._o 5._o then_o i_o acknowledge_v my_o sin_n unto_o thou_o neither_o do_v i_o hide_v my_o iniquity_n for_o i_o think_v i_o will_v confess_v against_o myself_o my_o wickedness_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o thou_o forgave_v the_o punishment_n of_o my_o sin_n and_o this_o all_o god_n child_n have_v oft_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o they_o never_o have_v a_o more_o sweet_a sense_n and_o assurance_n of_o god_n love_n than_o when_o they_o most_o deep_o humble_v themselves_o before_o he_o in_o the_o free_a acknowledge_v and_o bewail_v of_o their_o sin_n when_o they_o have_v sow_v most_o tear_n this_o way_n they_o have_v reap_v most_o joy_n psal._n 126._o 5._o when_o they_o have_v be_v most_o ready_a to_o accuse_v themselves_o the_o lord_n have_v be_v most_o ready_a to_o justify_v they_o as_o we_o see_v
in_o the_o example_n of_o that_o publican_n luk._n 18._o 14._o when_o they_o have_v cast_v themselves_o low_a the_o lord_n have_v lift_v they_o up_o high_a this_o way_n humble_v yourselves_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o shall_v lift_v you_o up_o jam._n 4._o 10._o the_o more_o humble_a and_o poor_a we_o be_v the_o fit_a we_o be_v to_o trust_v in_o god_n i_o will_v leave_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o thou_o a_o afflict_a and_o poor_a people_n and_o they_o shall_v trust_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n zeph._n 3._o 12._o the_o last_o mean_n to_o maintain_v this_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v to_o make_v continual_a observation_n of_o the_o experiment_n of_o god_n favour_n 5._o we_o daily_o receive_v and_o of_o the_o undoubted_a fruit_n of_o god_n grace_n we_o find_v in_o ourselves_o for_o experience_n breed_v hope_n rom._n 5._o 4._o so_o say_v david_n psal._n 71._o 5_o 6._o thou_o be_v my_o hope_n o_o lord_n god_n thou_o be_v my_o trust_n from_o my_o youth_n my_o praise_n shall_v be_v always_o of_o thou_o 2._o cor._n 1._o 10._o who_o deliver_v we_o from_o so_o great_a a_o death_n and_o do_v deliver_v we_o in_o who_o we_o trust_v that_o hereafter_o he_o will_v deliver_v us._n and_o for_o observe_v the_o fruit_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o ourselves_o see_v what_o stead_n it_o stand_v job_n in_o chap._n 29._o and_o 30._o and_o gal._n 6._o 4._o let_v every_o man_n prove_v his_o own_o work_n and_o then_o shall_v he_o have_v rejoice_v in_o himself_o alone_o and_o not_o in_o another_o and_o thus_o much_o for_o the_o first_o use_n lecture_n the_o seventie_o six_o december_n 18._o 1610._o john_n four_o xlii_o the_o second_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v for_o the_o examination_n and_o trial_n of_o that_o confidence_n and_o assurance_n we_o seem_v to_o have_v of_o god_n favour_n and_o 2._o of_o our_o own_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o a_o man_n have_v have_v a_o false_a peace_n and_o persuasion_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o of_o his_o own_o salvation_n 1._o cor._n 10._o 12._o a_o man_n may_v think_v he_o stand_v that_o do_v not_o to_o most_o wicked_a man_n god_n say_v jer._n 3._o 4._o do_v thou_o not_o still_o cry_v unto_o i_o thou_o be_v my_o father_n and_o the_o guide_n of_o my_o youth_n micah_n 3._o 11._o yet_o they_o will_v lean_v upon_o god_n and_o say_v be_v not_o the_o lord_n among_o we_o no_o evil_a can_v come_v to_o we_o yea_o they_o count_v they_o beast_n that_o make_v any_o doubt_n of_o this_o they_o wonder_v to_o see_v god_n child_n so_o full_a of_o doubt_n and_o fear_n and_o conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o either_o they_o have_v be_v notable_a hypocrite_n and_o more_o notorious_a sinner_n than_o other_o man_n or_o else_o that_o they_o be_v mad_a and_o frantic_a and_o for_o one_o that_o satan_n have_v overthrow_v by_o desperation_n there_o be_v twenty_o who_o he_o have_v overthrow_v with_o this_o false_a assurance_n we_o be_v therefore_o to_o be_v exhort_v to_o examine_v our_o assurance_n pro._n 8._o 26._o he_o that_o trust_v in_o his_o own_o heart_n be_v a_o fool_n for_o as_o the_o true_a assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n be_v a_o comfortable_a thing_n so_o be_v a_o false_a peace_n and_o assurance_n one_o of_o the_o most_o grievous_a judgement_n that_o can_v befall_v a_o man_n isaiah_n 29._o 9_o 10._o when_o he_o have_v say_v stay_v yourselves_o and_o wonder_n he_o add_v this_o to_o be_v the_o judgement_n they_o shall_v wonder_v at_o the_o lord_n have_v cover_v you_o with_o a_o spirit_n of_o slumber_n and_o have_v shut_v up_o your_o eye_n of_o the_o two_o it_o be_v better_o for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v vex_v with_o continual_a doubt_n and_o fear_n than_o to_o be_v lull_v asleep_a with_o such_o a_o assurance_n for_o beside_o that_o it_o keep_v a_o man_n from_o seek_v to_o god_n it_o will_v not_o hold_v but_o fail_v he_o when_o he_o shall_v have_v most_o need_n of_o it_o job_n 11._o 20._o their_o refuge_n shall_v perish_v and_o their_o hope_n shall_v be_v sorrow_n of_o mind_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o true_a confidence_n heb._n 10._o 35._o cast_v not_o away_o your_o confidence_n which_o have_v great_a recompense_n of_o reward_n so_o may_v i_o say_v on_o the_o contrary_a side_n to_o wicked_a man_n cast_v away_o this_o your_o confidence_n for_o it_o shall_v have_v no_o recompense_n of_o reward_n i_o will_v therefore_o give_v you_o some_o note_n whereby_o you_o may_v try_v whether_o the_o assurance_n you_o have_v of_o god_n favour_n and_o the_o peace_n you_o find_v in_o yourselves_o be_v from_o faith_n or_o from_o presumption_n 1._o from_o the_o time_n when_o first_o we_o come_v unto_o this_o assurance_n they_o that_o have_v this_o false_a assurance_n have_v have_v it_o from_o their_o mother_n womb_n they_o be_v never_o of_o other_o mind_n they_o be_v never_o trouble_v with_o any_o fear_n or_o doubt_v this_o way_n but_o the_o faithful_a can_v say_v there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n in_o themselves_o which_o wrought_v much_o fear_n and_o after_o that_o have_v sound_o humble_v they_o than_o they_o come_v to_o this_o comfortable_a assurance_n this_o be_v the_o ordinary_a way_n you_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n again_o to_o fear_v but_o you_o have_v receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n whereby_o we_o cry_v abba_n father_n rom._n 8._o 15._o 2._o from_o the_o mean_n whereby_o it_o be_v wrought_v in_o us._n for_o the_o assurance_n that_o the_o faithful_a have_v be_v first_o wrought_v in_o they_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n and_o be_v thereby_o daily_o increase_v i_o create_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o lip_n peace_n peace_n isaiah_n 57_o 19_o they_o that_o have_v this_o false_a assurance_n never_o find_v comfort_n in_o the_o word_n never_o care_v for_o it_o nay_o if_o any_o thing_n ever_o interrupt_v their_o peace_n it_o be_v that_o the_o seldomer_n they_o hear_v it_o the_o more_o quiet_a they_o be_v in_o their_o mind_n apoc._n 11._o 10._o these_o two_o prophet_n vex_v they_o that_o dwell_v on_o the_o earth_n 3._o from_o the_o ground_n whereupon_o our_o assurance_n be_v found_v and_o build_v for_o their_o assurance_n that_o have_v this_o false_a peace_n be_v ground_v 1._o either_o upon_o god_n temporal_a blessing_n hos._n 12._o 8._o i_o be_o become_v rich_a i_o have_v find_v i_o out_o substance_n in_o all_o my_o labour_n they_o shall_v find_v none_o iniquity_n in_o i_o that_o be_v sin_n or_o 2._o upon_o a_o general_a persuasion_n of_o god_n goodness_n and_o christ_n merit_n jeremie_n 3._o 5._o will_v he_o keep_v his_o anger_n for_o ever_o will_v he_o reserve_v it_o to_o the_o end_n matth._n 7._o 2●…_n not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n or_o 3_o upon_o some_o civil_a virtue_n that_o they_o discern_v in_o themselves_o which_o many_o other_o do_v want_v as_o that_o proud_a pharisee_n do_v god_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o i_o be_o not_o as_o other_o man_n be_v extortioner_n unjust_a adulterer_n or_o even_o as_o this_o publican_n luke_n 18._o 11._o whereas_o the_o faithful_a as_o you_o have_v hear_v in_o the_o doctrine_n ground_n their_o assurance_n upon_o god_n word_n upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n spirit_n upon_o the_o vnchangeablenesse_n of_o god_n love_n and_o all-sufficiency_n that_o be_v in_o he_o to_o keep_v that_o that_o be_v commit_v to_o he_o 4._o from_o the_o measure_n of_o this_o assurance_n for_o the_o faithful_a have_v not_o this_o assurance_n so_o perfect_a but_o they_o be_v oft_o trouble_v with_o doubt_n and_o fear_n gal._n 9_o 17._o the_o flesh_n lust_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n against_o the_o flesh_n and_o these_o be_v contrary_a one_o to_o another_o they_o find_v cause_n to_o cry_v as_o mark_v 9_o 24._o lord_n i_o believe_v help_v my_o unbelief_n but_o they_o that_o have_v this_o false_a assurance_n be_v most_o confident_a and_o never_o have_v any_o doubt_n luke_n 11._o 21._o when_o the_o strong_a man_n arm_v keep_v his_o palace_n the_o thing_n that_o he_o possess_v be_v in_o peace_n 5._o the_o five_o and_o last_o difference_n be_v from_o the_o effect_n and_o fruit_n of_o this_o assurance_n for_o in_o the_o natural_a man_n his_o assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n work_v no_o change_n at_o all_o in_o his_o life_n make_v he_o never_o the_o better_o he_o have_v no_o more_o fear_n to_o offend_v god_n because_o of_o this_o no_o more_o care_n to_o please_v he_o he_o can_v commit_v very_o heinous_a sin_n and_o never_o be_v trouble_v with_o they_o they_o never_o interrupt_v the_o peace_n of_o his_o conscience_n psal._n 64._o 4._o they_o shoot_v in_o secret_a at_o the_o perfect_a sudden_o do_v they_o shoot_v at_o he_o and_o fear_v not_o yea_o his_o very_a assurance_n
that_o he_o pretend_v he_o have_v of_o god_n favour_n embolden_v he_o to_o sin_n jeremie_n 3._o 4_o 5._o do_v thou_o not_o still_o cry_v to_o i_o thou_o be_v my_o father_n etc._n etc._n but_o thou_o do_v evil_a even_o more_o and_o more_o they_o be_v wicked_a therefore_o can_v they_o have_v no_o true_a peace_n there_o be_v no_o peace_n say_v my_o god_n to_o the_o wicked_a isaiah_n 57_o 21._o but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o true_a assurance_n that_o god_n spirit_n work_v in_o the_o faithful_a make_v they_o careful_a to_o please_v god_n fearful_a to_o offend_v he_o psalm_n 26._o 3._o thy_o love_a kindness_n be_v before_o my_o eye_n therefore_o have_v i_o walk_v in_o thy_o truth_n psal._n 119._o 166._o lord_n i_o have_v trust_v in_o thy_o salvation_n and_o have_v do_v all'thy_a common_a dement_n 1._o john_n 3._o 3._o every_o one_o that_o have_v this_o hope_n in_o he_o purge_v himself_o even_o as_o he_o be_v pure_a and_o indeed_o none_o can_v have_v any_o true_a trust_n in_o god_n but_o such_o as_o fear_v he_o psalm_n 115._o 11._o you_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n trust_v in_o the_o lord_n for_o god_n use_v not_o to_o speak_v peace_n to_o any_o but_o to_o his_o saint_n and_o such_o as_o he_o do_v withal_o by_o his_o grace_n restrain_v that_o they_o turn_v not_o again_o unto_o folly_n ps._n 85._o 8._o the_o three_o use_n of_o the_o former_a doctrine_n be_v for_o the_o comfort_n of_o such_o as_o do_v unfeigned_o fear_v god_n and_o have_v sometime_o have_v a_o undoubted_a assurance_n 3_o of_o their_o salvation_n and_o have_v now_o lose_v the_o feel_n of_o it_o this_o have_v be_v the_o case_n of_o many_o of_o god_n servant_n and_o may_v be_v the_o case_n of_o every_o one_o of_o us._n you_o know_v the_o church_n complain_v of_o this_o i_o seek_v he_o who_o my_o soul_n love_v i_o seek_v he_o but_o i_o find_v he_o not_o cant._n 3._o 1._o and_o how_o oft_o do_v david_n complain_v that_o his_o soul_n cleave_v to_o the_o dust_n psal._n 119._o 25._o that_o be_v melt_v for_o heaviness_n verse_n 28._o that_o his_o spirit_n be_v in_o perplexity_n and_o his_o heart_n within_o be_v amaze_v psal._n 143._o 4._o lord_n why_o do_v thou_o reject_v my_o soul_n and_o hide_v thy_o face_n from_o i_o psal._n 88_o 14._o he_o say_v in_o his_o haste_n he_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o god_n sight_n psal._n 31._o 22._o yea_o second_o sometime_o he_o continue_v in_o this_o estate_n a_o great_a while_n together_o psal._n 13._o 1._o how_o long_o will_v thou_o forget_v i_o o_o lord_n how_o long_o will_v thou_o hide_v face_n from_o i_o psal._n 119._o 82._o my_o eye_n fail_v for_o thy_o promise_n say_v when_o will_v thou_o comfort_v i_o and_o three_o he_o have_v these_o fit_n oftentimes_o also_o psal_n 88_o 16._o from_o my_o youth_n i_o suffer_v thy_o terror_n see_v therefore_o the_o dear_a of_o god_n child_n do_v oft_o lose_v this_o comfortable_a assurance_n and_o when_o they_o have_v lose_v it_o be_v so_o apt_a to_o conclude_v against_o themselves_o that_o they_o be_v never_o in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n they_o never_o have_v true_a faith_n i_o will_v therefore_o give_v you_o five_o rule_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o such_o as_o be_v thus_o distress_v 1._o the_o first_o be_v to_o search_v out_o the_o special_a sin_n that_o have_v deprive_v thou_o of_o this_o comfort_n and_o repent_v of_o it_o this_o rule_n be_v prescribe_v why_o be_v live_v man_n sorrowful_a let_v we_o search_v and_o try_v our_o way_n and_o turn_v again_o unto_o the_o lord_n lam._n 3._o 39_o 40._o thus_o do_v david_n recover_v his_o comfort_n when_o i_o keep_v silence_n my_o bone_n wax_v old_a through_o my_o roar_v all_o the_o day_n long_o and_o i_o acknowledge_v my_o sin_n unto_o thou_o etc._n etc._n and_o thou_o forgave_v the_o iniquity_n of_o my_o sin_n psalm_n 32._o 3_o 4._o 5._o 2._o to_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o grace_n that_o in_o former_a time_n thou_o have_v feel_v in_o thyself_o whatfaith_o and_o feeling_n and_o comfort_n in_o prayer_n what_o care_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n thou_o be_v sure_a thou_o have_v have_v in_o thou_o heretofore_o for_o from_o thence_o thou_o may_v bold_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v grace_n in_o thou_o still_o though_o thou_o can_v not_o now_o feel_v it_o the_o gift_n and_o call_n of_o god_n be_v without_o repentance_n rom._n 11._o 29._o this_o rule_n david_n follow_v when_o he_o have_v lose_v his_o feel_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o grace_n psal._n 77._o 5_o 6._o then_o i_o consider_v the_o day_n of_o old_a and_o the_o year_n of_o ancient_a time_n i_o call_v to_o my_o remembrance_n my_o song_n in_o the_o night_n and_o 143._o 5._o yet_o do_v i_o remember_v the_o time_n past_a 3._o to_o search_v thy_o own_o heart_n diligent_o and_o thou_o shall_v observe_v even_o when_o thou_o be_v at_o the_o worst_a certain_a note_n of_o grace_n in_o thou_o now_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a but_o when_o he_o be_v at_o the_o worst_a and_o have_v least_o feeling_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o his_o salvation_n but_o if_o he_o will_v look_v into_o himself_o he_o shall_v find_v these_o grace_n in_o himself_o 1._o that_o he_o yield_v not_o to_o his_o infidelity_n but_o strive_v against_o it_o and_o grieve_v unfeigned_o that_o he_o have_v lose_v the_o assurance_n of_o god_n favour_n psalm_n 77._o 2._o his_o soul_n refuse_v comfort_n verse_n 3._o his_o spirit_n be_v full_a of_o anguish_n verse_n 10._o and_o i_o say_v this_o be_v my_o death_n 2._o that_o he_o desire_v above_o all_o thing_n and_o seek_v unfeigned_o and_o earnest_o to_o recover_v his_o feel_n of_o god_n favour_n again_o cant._n 3._o 1_o 2_o 3._o the_o spouse_n seek_v she_o belove_v in_o her_o bed_n verse_n 1._o about_o in_o the_o city_n by_o the_o street_n and_o by_o the_o open_a place_n verse_n 2._o inquire_v of_o the_o watchman_n for_o her_o belove_a verse_n 3_o so_o say_v david_n of_o himself_o when_o his_o spirit_n be_v in_o perplexity_n within_o he_o psalm_n 143._o 6._o i_o stretch_v forth_o my_o hand_n unto_o thou_o my_o soul_n desire_v after_o thou_o as_o the_o thirsty_a land_n 3._o that_o though_o he_o have_v no_o feel_n of_o god_n love_n to_o he_o yet_o he_o love_v god_n and_o desire_v to_o please_v and_o honour_v he_o be_v afraid_a to_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v offend_v he_o psalm_n 44._o 18_o 19_o our_o heart_n be_v not_o turn_v back_o neither_o have_v our_o step_n decline_v from_o thy_o way_n though_o thou_o have_v smite_v we_o down_o to_o the_o place_n of_o dragon_n and_o cover_v we_o with_o the_o shadow_n of_o death_n now_o if_o any_o one_o of_o these_o grace_n be_v in_o thou_o thou_o may_v be_v sure_a thou_o be_v alive_a as_o if_o we_o discern_v in_o one_o that_o by_o many_o likelihood_n seem_v to_o be_v dead_a that_o he_o either_o breathe_v or_o move_v or_o hear_v we_o be_v sure_o there_o be_v life_n in_o he_o so_o be_v it_o in_o this_o case_n and_o every_o christian_n be_v bind_v in_o the_o affliction_n of_o his_o conscience_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o that_o grace_n that_o be_v in_o he_o as_o well_o as_o of_o that_o corruption_n that_o be_v in_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v as_o well_o thankful_a to_o god_n for_o the_o one_o as_o he_o be_v humble_v for_o the_o other_o 1._o thess_n 5._o 18._o in_o all_o thing_n give_v thanks_n for_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n towards_o you_o this_o rule_n david_n follow_v psalm_n 77._o 6._o i_o commune_v with_o my_o own_o heart_n and_o my_o spirit_n search_v diligent_o 4._o use_v the_o benefit_n of_o their_o advice_n that_o can_v better_o judge_v of_o thy_o estate_n than_o thou_o thyself_o for_o the_o present_a can_z this_o rule_n the_o apostle_n prescribe_v be_v any_o sick_a among_o you_o let_v he_o send_v for_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n and_o let_v they_o pray_v over_o he_o and_o the_o prayer_n of_o faith_n shall_v save_v the_o sick_a and_o the_o lord_n shall_v raise_v he_o up_o and_o if_o he_o have_v commit_v sin_n they_o shall_v be_v sorgve_v he_o confess_v your_o fault_n one_o to_o another_o and_o pray_v one_o for_o another_o james_n 5._o 14_o 15_o 16._o and_o this_o course_n the_o church_n take_v when_o by_o her_o secret_a and_o private_a endeavour_n in_o her_o bed_n by_o night_n she_o can_v not_o find_v her_o belove_a she_o go_v out_o into_o the_o street_n of_o the_o city_n among_o her_o godly_a acquaintance_n for_o their_o help_n and_o when_o that_o will_v not_o serve_v she_o seek_v help_v of_o the_o watchman_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n cant._n 3._o 2_o 3._o 5._o last_o rest_v assure_v that_o though_o thou_o have_v for_o the_o present_a lose_v it_o yet_o thou_o
that_o man_n show_v such_o contempt_n to_o the_o word_n that_o every_o mean_a man_n scorn_v to_o be_v admonish_v and_o reprove_v by_o it_o jor._n 13._o 15._o heat_n and_o give_v ear_n be_v not_o proud_a for_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v it_o yea_o the_o best_a of_o god_n child_n be_v extreme_o prone_a to_o this_o sin_n to_o think_v too_o well_o of_o themselves_o if_o they_o enjoy_v prosperity_n but_o a_o while_n when_o other_o sin_n decay_v in_o we_o this_o grow_v and_o increase_v and_o a_o man_n will_v be_v proud_a of_o grace_n nay_o proud_a even_o of_o this_o because_o he_o be_v more_o humble_a than_o other_o man_n it_o be_v say_v of_o good_a hezekiah_n 2._o chron._n 32._o 25._o that_o when_o upon_o his_o repentance_n and_o humble_v himself_o god_n have_v restore_v he_o and_o add_v fifteen_o year_n to_o his_o life_n that_o his_o heart_n be_v lift_v up_o many_o think_v they_o have_v no_o great_a need_n of_o affliction_n for_o this_o they_o be_v not_o proud_a because_o they_o be_v not_o curious_a in_o apparel_n nor_o of_o their_o body_n but_o alas_o that_o be_v but_o one_o fruit_n of_o pride_n a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o proud_a man_n though_o he_o be_v a_o very_a sloven_n this_o way_n now_o affliction_n will_v humble_v a_o man_n and_o abate_v this_o pride_n of_o heart_n and_o nothing_o but_o affliction_n will_v do_v it_o elihu_n note_v this_o to_o be_v one_o end_n that_o god_n aim_v at_o in_o correct_v man_n job_n 33._o 17._o that_o he_o may_v hide_v the_o pride_n of_o man_n for_o the_o pride_n we_o have_v in_o our_o beauty_n and_o strength_n of_o our_o body_n a_o little_a sickness_n will_v abate_v it_o and_o cause_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v indeed_o as_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o phil._n 3._o 21._o avile_n body_n unworthy_a of_o the_o cost_n and_o care_n and_o time_n that_o we_o have_v bestow_v upon_o it_o and_o what_o end_n will_v there_o be_v of_o this_o vanity_n if_o god_n shall_v not_o now_o and_o then_o visit_v his_o child_n with_o some_o correction_n or_o other_o but_o let_v we_o consider_v more_o distinct_o the_o benefit_n and_o fruit_n of_o affliction_n this_o way_n 1._o it_o abate_v the_o pride_n that_o be_v in_o man_n towards_o man_n it_o daunt_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o proud_a and_o cruel_a oppressor_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o job_n 31._o 13_o 14._o if_o i_o do_v contemn_v the_o judgement_n of_o my_o manseruant_n or_o of_o my_o maid_n when_o they_o do_v contend_v with_o i_o what_o then_o shall_v i_o do_v when_o god_n stand_v up_o and_o when_o he_o shall_v visit_v i_o what_o shall_v i_o answer_v david_n in_o his_o prosperity_n care_v not_o what_o wrong_n he_o do_v to_o his_o faithful_a servant_n and_o dear_a friend_n uriah_n but_o in_o his_o adversity_n he_o dare_v not_o do_v the_o least_o harm_n to_o his_o mortal_a enemy_n he_o dare_v not_o put_v forth_o his_o hand_n against_o saul_n 1._o sam._n 24._o 10._o you_o have_v seldom_o see_v any_o that_o have_v any_o mind_n to_o wrong_v other_o when_o god_n hand_n have_v be_v heavy_a upon_o they_o on_o their_o death_n bed_n you_o shall_v hear_v the_o cruel_a oppressor_n relent_v and_o talk_v of_o a_o desire_n and_o purpose_n they_o have_v to_o make_v satisfaction_n to_o they_o that_o they_o have_v wrong_v this_o way_n but_o if_o man_n shall_v now_o live_v to_o that_o age_n that_o they_o do_v before_o the_o flood_n oh_o how_o will_v the_o earth_n be_v fill_v with_o cruelty_n and_o violence_n as_o the_o lord_n complain_v it_o be_v in_o those_o day_n gen._n 6._o 13._o 2._o it_o abate_v the_o pride_n that_o be_v in_o man_n towards_o the_o lord_n himself_o if_o there_o be_v then_o a_o messenger_n etc._n etc._n say_v elihu_n job_n 33._o 23._o as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v then_o may_v god_n faithful_a servant_n find_v audience_n even_o with_o the_o proud_a man_n and_o how_o do_v affliction_n abate_v thus_o the_o pride_n of_o man_n sure_o it_o make_v a_o man_n to_o know_v himself_o and_o of_o how_o little_a worth_n he_o be_v how_o unable_a to_o help_v himself_o 1._o whereas_o in_o prosperity_n we_o be_v apt_a to_o advance_v and_o think_v high_o of_o ourselves_o it_o be_v so_o even_o with_o good_a hezekiah_n himself_o as_o we_o read_v 2._o chron._n 32._o 25._o affliction_n make_v a_o man_n know_v himself_o and_o of_o how_o little_a worth_n he_o be_v how_o unable_a to_o help_v himself_o ps._n 39_o 11._o when_o thou_o with_o rebuke_n do_v chasten_v man_n for_o iniquity_n thou_o as_o a_o moth_n make_v his_o beau_n tie_v to_o consume_v sure_o every_o man_n be_v vanity_n 2._o whereas_o in_o prosperity_n our_o sin_n be_v never_o wont_a to_o trouble_v we_o but_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o think_v our_o state_n good_a enough_o affliction_n use_v to_o awaken_v the_o conscience_n and_o to_o bring_v those_o sin_n into_o their_o remembrance_n that_o be_v unknown_a or_o forget_v before_o it_o summon_v they_o to_o appear_v before_o god_n and_o constrain_v they_o to_o think_v of_o god_n and_o of_o his_o anger_n due_a to_o sin_n so_o say_v elihu_n job_n 36._o 8._o when_o man_n be_v tie_v in_o the_o cord_n of_o affliction_n that_o be_v have_v some_o such_o extreme_a affliction_n upon_o they_o as_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o get_v out_o of_o it_o then_o will_v he_o show_v they_o their_o work_n and_o their_o sin_n a_o notable_a example_n we_o have_v of_o this_o in_o josephs_n brethren_n the_o grievous_a sin_n they_o have_v commit_v many_o year_n before_o and_o when_o they_o commit_v it_o it_o never_o trouble_v they_o gen_n 37._o 24_o 25._o when_o they_o have_v cast_v he_o into_o a_o pit_n they_o sit_v down_o to_o eat_v bread_n but_o when_o grievous_a affliction_n come_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o be_v take_v for_o spy_n and_o cast_v into_o prison_n than_o their_o conscience_n be_v awaken_v and_o their_o sin_n come_v into_o their_o remembrance_n and_o the_o justice_n of_o god_n also_o which_o they_o have_v provoke_v thereby_o then_o they_o can_v say_v one_o to_o another_o gen._n 42._o 21._o we_o have_v very_o sin_v against_o our_o brother_n in_o that_o we_o see_v the_o anguish_n of_o his_o soul_n when_o he_o beseech_v we_o and_o we_o will_v not_o hear_v he_o therefore_o be_v this_o trouble_n come_v upon_o us._n see_v this_o also_o in_o david_n psal._n 40_o 12._o when_o innumerable_a evil_n have_v compass_v he_o about_o than_o his_o iniquity_n take_v hold_v upon_o he_o and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o reason_n why_o affliction_n be_v so_o profitable_a and_o necessary_a for_o all_o god_n child_n second_o affliction_n make_v a_o man_n seek_v to_o god_n it_o wrought_v so_o we_o see_v here_o in_o this_o ruler_n in_o prosperity_n while_o we_o can_v help_v ourselves_o or_o can_v find_v help_v any_o where_o else_o we_o seldom_o or_o never_o seek_v serious_o to_o god_n we_o seldom_o pray_v or_o if_o we_o do_v sometime_o we_o do_v it_o full_a cold_o and_o drowsy_o with_o great_a unwillingness_n and_o tediousness_n this_o corruption_n be_v in_o every_o one_o of_o us._n rom._n 3._o 11._o there_o be_v none_o that_o seek_v after_o god_n this_o be_v notable_o set_v forth_o in_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o prodigal_n luke_n 15._o first_o while_o his_o purse_n be_v full_a and_o he_o in_o his_o jollity_n he_o care_v not_o for_o his_o father_n he_o care_v not_o though_o he_o never_o come_v at_o he_o verse_n 13._o second_o when_o he_o begin_v to_o be_v in_o necessity_n he_o cleave_v to_o a_o citizen_n in_o that_o country_n verse_n 15._o and_o think_v not_o yet_o of_o return_v to_o his_o father_n three_o when_o he_o come_v into_o extremity_n than_o he_o say_v verse_n 18._o i_o will_v go_v to_o my_o father_n this_o fruit_n of_o affliction_n be_v so_o general_a that_o the_o prophet_n say_v isaiah_n 26._o 16._o as_o if_o it_o wrought_v so_o in_o all_o man_n lord_n in_o trouble_n have_v they_o visit_v thou_o they_o pour_v out_o a_o prayer_n when_o thy_o chastisement_n be_v upon_o they_o so_o do_v david_n also_o speak_v of_o it_o than_o they_o cry_v unto_o the_o lord_n in_o their_o trouble_n psal._n 107._o 6._o and_o repeat_v it_o often_o verse_n 13._o 19_o 28._o as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o ordinary_a use_n of_o all_o man_n to_o do_v so_o two_o notable_a example_n we_o have_v for_o this_o the_o one_o in_o psalm_n 142._o 4_o 5._o i_o look_v on_o my_o right_a hand_n and_o behold_v but_o there_o be_v none_o that_o will_v know_v i_o all_o refuge_n fail_v i_o and_o none_o care_v for_o my_o soul_n then_o cry_v i_o unto_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v thou_o be_v my_o hope_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v i_o cry_v not_o to_o the_o lord_n till_o all_o other_o refuge_n fail_v i_o the_o other_o in_o 2._o chron._n 33._o 12_o 13._o
other_o be_v near_o unto_o a_o man_n when_o his_o heart_n be_v thus_o harden_v and_o grow_v obstinate_a in_o pride_n or_o in_o drunkenness_n or_o in_o uncleanness_n or_o in_o oppression_n or_o in_o any_o other_o sin_n that_o the_o prophet_n tell_v amazia_n to_o his_o face_n 2_o chron._n 25._o 16._o he_o know_v by_o that_o that_o god_n have_v determine_v to_o destroy_v he_o as_o you_o shall_v find_v he_o do_v indeed_o ver_fw-la 27._o and_o though_o the_o jew_n have_v many_o grievous_a sin_n yet_o you_o shall_v find_v there_o never_o come_v any_o strange_a and_o common_a judgement_n upon_o they_o till_o they_o grow_v to_o this_o dan._n 9_o 6._o we_o will_v not_o obey_v thy_o servant_n the_o prophet_n which_o speak_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n verse_n 11._o therefore_o the_o curse_n be_v pour_v upon_o us._n second_o god_n never_o be_v so_o fierce_a and_o terrible_a in_o his_o temporal_a judgement_n against_o any_o sinner_n as_o against_o those_o that_o have_v enjoy_v the_o best_a mean_n and_o obstinate_o neglect_v and_o rebel_v against_o they_o god_n be_v very_o terrible_a in_o the_o assembly_n of_o his_o saint_n psal._n 89._o 7._o under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n it_o have_v not_o be_v do_v as_o have_v be_v do_v unto_o jerusalem_n dan_fw-mi 9_o 12._o wrath_n be_v come_v upon_o they_o unto_o the_o uttermost_a 1._o thess._n 2._o 16._o three_o and_o principal_o in_o god_n spiritual_a judgement_n we_o may_v discern_v this_o 1._o such_o as_o wilful_o refuse_v to_o receive_v and_o embrace_v the_o truth_n when_o it_o be_v reveal_v unto_o they_o god_n be_v wont_a to_o take_v their_o judgement_n and_o understanding_n from_o they_o hear_v you_o shall_v hear_v and_o shall_v not_o understand_v and_o see_v you_o shall_v see_v and_o shall_v not_o perceive_v for_o this_o people_n have_v close_v th●…ir_n own_o eye_n matt._n 13._o 14_o 15._o because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v for_o this_o cause_n god_n shall_v send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n 2._o thess._n 2_o 10_o 11._o 2._o such_o as_o use_v obstinate_o to_o sin_n against_o their_o conscience_n god_n be_v wont_a to_o give_v they_o up_o to_o a_o reprobate_a mind_n and_o unto_o beastly_a and_o vile_a affection_n marvel_v not_o therefore_o to_o see_v such_o as_o have_v have_v the_o best_a mean_n if_o they_o prove_v bad_a to_o become_v of_o all_o bad_a man_n the_o most_o profane_a and_o ungracious_a if_o you_o see_v child_n of_o most_o godly_a parent_n people_n that_o have_v live_v under_o most_o faithful_a pastor_n prove_v such_o wonder_v not_o it_o be_v say_v of_o manasse_n the_o son_n of_o hezekiah_n that_o he_o wrought_v more_o wicked_o than_o all_o the_o amorit●…s_n that_o have_v be_v before_o he_o 2._o king_n 21._o 11._o 3._o god_n have_v threaten_v against_o some_o sinner_n that_o he_o will_v never_o comfort_v they_o nor_o show_v mercy_n on_o they_o and_o consequent_o not_o give_v they_o grace_n to_o repent_v which_o be_v the_o grievous_a plague_n of_o all_o plague_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o spare_v that_o man_n but_o the_o anger_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o i●…alousie_n shall_v smoke_v against_o that_o man_n and_o all_o the_o curse_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n shall_v lie_v upon_o he_o deut._n 29._o 20._o and_o the_o cause_n hereof_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o former_a verse_n to_o be_v the_o presumption_n and_o obstinacy_n in_o sin_v that_o be_v in_o that_o man_n see_v this_o in_o pharaoh_n exod._n 9_o 12._o the_o lord_n harden_v his_o heart_n that_o he_o can_v not_o repent_v but_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n exod._n 8._o 15._o 19_o 32._o he_o have_v harden_v his_o own_o heart_n and_o wilful_o refuse_v to_o hearken_v to_o the_o message_n that_o be_v bring_v he_o from_o god_n or_o to_o be_v humble_v and_o move_v with_o his_o judgement_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v two_o reason_n 1._o this_o obstinacy_n in_o sin_n argue_v that_o sin_n have_v the_o full_a possession_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o that_o man_n love_v it_o unfeigned_o and_o that_o be_v one_o cause_n why_o god_n hate_v it_o so_o much_o psal._n 11._o 5._o the_o wicked_a and_o he_o that_o love_v iniquity_n do_v his_o soul_n hate_n and_o 66._o 18._o if_o i_o regard_v wickedness_n in_o my_o heart_n the_o lord_n will_v not_o hear_v i_o our_o sin_n be_v then_o become_v our_o idol_n and_o god_n these_o man_n have_v set_v up_o their_o idol_n in_o their_o heart_n ezek._n 14._o 3._o when_o we_o give_v divine_a honour_n unto_o they_o 2._o it_o argue_v a_o rebellion_n and_o proud_a contempt_n of_o god_n when_o man_n will_v not_o be_v reclaim_v by_o his_o word_n job_n 34._o 37._o he_o add_v rebellion_n unto_o his_o sin_n and_o 1._o sam._n 15._o 23._o rebellion_n be_v as_o the_o sin_n of_o witchcraft_n yea_o this_o obstinacy_n will_v bring_v the_o heart_n by_o little_a and_o little_a into_o that_o impardonable_a sin_n that_o be_v commit_v in_o mere_a malice_n against_o god_n therefore_o when_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o sin_n be_v describe_v it_o be_v call_v a_o sin_v wilful_o heb._n 10._o 26._o and_o david_n psal._n 19_o 13._o speak_v of_o presumptuous_a sin_n as_o of_o the_o next_o step_n to_o the_o great_a transgression_n the_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v both_o for_o exhortation_n and_o for_o reproof_n and_o for_o comfort_n also_o we_o be_v all_o to_o be_v exhort_v by_o this_o doctrine_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o obstinacy_n in_o 1._o any_o sin_n and_o to_o count_v it_o a_o great_a favour_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o and_o by_o all_o mean_n labour_v to_o attain_v unto_o viz._n to_o have_v tractable_a and_o teachable_a heart_n this_o be_v make_v a_o note_n of_o god_n elect_n to_o receive_v the_o word_n glad_o act_v 2._o 41._o and_o with_o all_o readiness_n of_o mind_n act_v 17._o 11._o four_o note_n we_o may_v try_v this_o by_o 1._o when_o in_o go_v to_o hear_v the_o word_n we_o go_v with_o a_o open_a heart_n willing_a to_o learn_v whatsoever_o god_n shall_v teach_v us._n act_n 10_o 33._o we_o be_v all_o here_o present_a before_o god_n to_o hear_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v command_v thou_o of_o god_n 2._o when_o our_o reason_n be_v so_o captivate_v unto_o god_n that_o we_o dare_v not_o dispute_v nor_o cavil_v against_o any_o truth_n god_n have_v clear_o reveal_v unto_o we_o in_o his_o word_n seem_v it_o never_o so_o contrary_a to_o our_o reason_n and_o affection_n job_n 6._o 24._o teach_v i_o and_o i_o will_v hold_v my_o tongue_n and_o cause_v i_o to_o understand_v wherein_o i_o have_v err_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v reveal_v to_o i_o by_o thy_o word_n any_o thing_n wherein_o i_o have_v offend_v thou_o and_o i_o will_v lay_v my_o hand_n upon_o my_o mouth_n i_o will_v not_o dare_v to_o reason_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o it_o 3._o when_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o receive_v god_n word_n and_o be_v inform_v in_o his_o will_n by_o any_o how_o much_o soever_o he_o be_v our_o inferior_a when_o we_o dare_v not_o reject_v good_a counsel_n and_o admo●…ition_n from_o any_o isaiah_n 11._o 6._o a_o little_a child_n shall_v lead_v they_o 4._o when_o the_o lord_n have_v reveal_v his_o will_n unto_o we_o by_o any_o mean_n we_o show_v a_o earnest_a care_n and_o endeavour_v to_o obey_v it_o psal._n 119._o 34._o give_v i_o understanding_n and_o i_o will_v keep_v thy_o law_n yea_o i_o will_v keep_v it_o with_o my_o whole_a heart_n for_o reproof_n and_o terror_n of_o all_o wicked_a man_n that_o live_v in_o these_o day_n of_o 2._o light_n isaiah_n 33._o 14._o the_o sinner_n in_o zion_n be_v afraid_a say_v the_o prophet_n and_o indeed_o no_o sinner_n under_o heaven_n have_v so_o much_o cause_n to_o fear_n as_o the_o sinner_n in_o zion_n have_v they_o that_o have_v enjoy_v the_o best_a mean_n they_o can_v pretend_v ignorance_n for_o excuse_v of_o their_o sin_n all_o their_o sin_n will_v be_v judge_v to_o be_v do_v obstinate_o and_o wilful_o but_o two_o special_a sort_n of_o sinner_n be_v reprove_v here_o first_o such_o as_o be_v wilful_a and_o obstinate_a against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n second_o such_o as_o be_v obstinate_a and_o wilful_a against_o the_o practice_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o truth_n two_o sort_n there_o be_v of_o they_o that_o will_v not_o know_v the_o truth_n as_o first_o they_o that_o refuse_v to_o hear_v because_o they_o think_v their_o ignorance_n will_v be_v some_o advantage_n to_o they_o their_o conscience_n will_v be_v the_o quiet_a for_o it_o and_o these_o be_v like_o felix_n act_v 24._o 26._o who_o when_o he_o feel_v his_o conscience_n awaken_v and_o trouble_v by_o paul_n ministry_n will_v hear_v he_o no_o long_o but_o alas_o this_o will_v be_v no_o advantage_n to_o
lord_n say_v gen._n 18._o 20._o the_o cry_n of_o sodom_n and_o gomorrah_n be_v great_a and_o their_o sin_n exceed_v grievous_a but_o what_o make_v the_o cry_n of_o their_o sin_n so_o great_a look_v gen._n 19_o 4._o and_o you_o shall_v find_v it_o be_v this_o the_o man_n of_o sodom_n compass_v lot_n house_n from_o the_o young_a even_o to_o the_o old_a all_o the_o people_n even_o from_o all_o quarter_n they_o be_v all_o corrupt_a with_o that_o beastly_a filthynesse_n they_o do_v all_o burn_n with_o that_o lust_n the_o three_o example_n be_v that_o of_o the_o captivity_n in_o babylon_n before_o it_o fall_v out_o when_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o be_v lay_v down_o by_o the_o prophet_n nothing_o be_v so_o much_o stand_v upon_o as_o this_o that_o all_o sort_n and_o condition_n of_o god_n people_n have_v corrupt_v themselves_o see_v this_o in_o jer._n 5._o 7._o how_o shall_v i_o spare_v thou_o for_o this_o and_o verse_n 9_o shall_v not_o i_o visit_v for_o these_o thing_n say_v the_o lord_n shall_v not_o my_o soul_n be_v avenge_v on_o such_o a_o nation_n as_o this_o why_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n verse_n 7._o they_o assemble_v themselves_o by_o company_n in_o harlot_n house_n and_o verse_n 8._o every_o man_n neigh_v after_o his_o neighbour_n wife_n adultery_n be_v grow_v to_o be_v the_o sin_n not_o of_o a_o few_o but_o of_o all_o sort_n see_v this_o also_o the_o child_n gather_v the_o wood_n and_o the_o father_n kindle_v the_o fire_n and_o the_o woman_n knead_v the_o dough_n to_o make_v cake_n to_o the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n jer._n 7._o 18._o 20._o a_o conspiracy_n be_v find_v among_o the_o man_n of_o juda_n and_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o the_o house_n of_o juda_n have_v break_v my_o covenant_n therefore_o behold_v i_o will_v bring_v evil_a upon_o they_o etc._n etc._n jer._n 11._o 9_o 11._o the_o like_a complaint_n we_o shall_v find_v ezek._n 22._o 6._o behold_v the_o prince_n of_o israel_n every_o one_o in_o thou_o be_v ready_a to_o his_o power_n to_o shed_v blood_n and_o verse_n 11._o every_o one_o have_v commit_v abomination_n with_o his_o neighbour_n wife_n and_o every_o one_o have_v wicked_o defile_v his_o daughter_n in_o law_n and_o in_o thou_o have_v every_o one_o force_v his_o own_o sister_n even_o his_o father_n daughter_n and_o after_o the_o captivity_n be_v come_v you_o shall_v see_v it_o be_v impute_v to_o this_o chief_o dan._n 9_o 11._o yea_o all_o israel_n have_v transgress_v thy_o law_n and_o have_v turn_v back_o and_o have_v not_o hear_v thy_o voice_n therefore_o the_o curse_n be_v pour_v upon_o us._n in_o all_o these_o example_n we_o see_v that_o while_o sin_v keep_v itself_o within_o any_o bound_n the_o lord_n do_v forbear_v to_o bring_v these_o common_a and_o general_a calamity_n upon_o man_n but_o when_o like_o a_o flood_n it_o overflow_v the_o bank_n and_o run_v over_o all_o then_o can_v god_n forbear_v no_o long_o the_o first_o use_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v for_o reproof_n most_o man_n count_v this_o a_o sufficient_a 1_o excuse_n and_o defence_n for_o any_o thing_n they_o hold_v or_o for_o any_o thing_n they_o do_v that_o they_o be_v not_o alone_o they_o hold_v as_o most_o man_n do_v and_o do_v as_o most_o man_n do_v they_o make_v the_o example_n of_o man_n the_o rule_n of_o their_o conscience_n first_o the_o good_a thing_n they_o do_v they_o do_v upon_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n they_o hold_v this_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o truth_n they_o keep_v the_o sabbath_n they_o come_v to_o church_n only_o upon_o this_o ground_n all_o man_n do_v so_o even_o the_o wise_a man_n we_o know_v they_o faith_n stand_v in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o man_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v 1._o cor._n 2._o 5._o second_o let_v all_o the_o preacher_n in_o the_o world_n speak_v never_o so_o much_o against_o some_o sin_n as_o the_o rest_n upon_o a_o dumb_a ministry_n the_o superstitious_a observation_n of_o many_o popish_a custom_n give_v and_o answer_v of_o challenge_n follow_v the_o new_a fashion_n the_o immodesty_n of_o woman_n in_o their_o apparel_n and_o attire_n yet_o will_v they_o not_o be_v persuade_v that_o these_o be_v sin_n only_o because_o they_o be_v so_o general_a and_o in_o fashion_n every_o where_o in_o this_o point_n our_o people_n be_v like_o those_o we_o read_v of_o jer._n 44._o 17._o we_o will_v burn_v incense_n to_o the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n and_o why_o so_o we_o have_v do_v so_o both_o we_o and_o our_o father_n our_o king_n and_o our_o prince_n in_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n and_o in_o the_o street_n of_o jerusalem_n three_o let_v we_o out_o of_o god_n word_n never_o so_o clear_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o sundry_a duty_n as_o to_o have_v prayer_n in_o our_o family_n etc._n etc._n yet_o can_v they_o not_o be_v persuade_v to_o it_o and_o why_o i_o pray_v you_o who_o do_v so_o a_o few_o precise_a fool_n who_o every_o body_n deride_v john_n 7._o 48_o 49._o do_v any_o of_o the_o ruler_n and_o pharisee_n beleene_n in_o he_o but_o this_o people_n that_o know_v not_o the_o law_n be_v curse_v four_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o know_v to_o be_v sin_n as_o swear_v whoredom_n drunkenness_n etc._n etc._n they_o bless_v and_o secure_a and_o quiet_a their_o conscience_n by_o this_o that_o they_o be_v not_o alone_o ezek._n 16._o 54._o thou_o have_v comfort_v they_o of_o sodom_n say_v god_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o who_o be_v not_o in_o some_o degree_n or_o other_o guilty_a of_o this_o corruption_n i_o will_v therefore_o give_v you_o some_o remedy_n against_o it_o out_o of_o god_n word_n 1._o consider_v that_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o suspect_v that_o that_o way_n which_o the_o most_o man_n take_v be_v not_o the_o right_a way_n that_o if_o we_o do_v as_o the_o most_o do_v sure_o we_o do_v not_o well_o matth._n 7._o 13_o 14._o it_o be_v the_o broad_a way_n that_o lead_v to_o destruction_n and_o many_o there_o be_v that_o go_v in_o thereat_o but_o the_o gate_n be_v straight_o and_o the_o way_n narrow_a that_o lead_v unto_o life_n and_o few_o there_o be_v that_o find_v it_o the_o most_o have_v ever_o swerve_v from_o the_o right_a way_n yea_o even_o the_o most_o of_o they_o that_o have_v profess_v the_o true_a religion_n many_o be_v call_v but_o few_o be_v choose_v matth._n 22._o 14._o christ_n true_a flock_n have_v ever_o be_v a_o little_a flock_n luke_n 12._o 32._o therefore_o christ_n have_v a_o strange_a speech_n luke_n 6._o 26._o woe_n be_v to_o you_o when_o all_o man_n speak_v well_o of_o you_o 2._o if_o we_o do_v swerve_v from_o the_o right_a way_n and_o sin_n against_o god_n it_o will_v not_o avail_v we_o to_o have_v all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n on_o our_o mind_n or_o to_o take_v our_o part_n they_o can_v plead_v for_o us._n 1._o sam._n 2._o 25._o if_o a_o man_n sin_n against_o the_o lord_n who_o will_v plead_v for_o he_o those_o which_o by_o their_o example_n or_o otherwise_o have_v draw_v we_o to_o sin_n will_v be_v far_o enough_o from_o pity_v or_o speak_v a_o word_n for_o we_o when_o god_n shall_v call_v we_o to_o judgement_n what_o comfort_n can_v the_o companion_n of_o wicked_a man_n yield_v to_o they_o when_o they_o be_v on_o their_o deathbed_n sure_o as_o much_o as_o the_o priest_n and_o elder_n do_v to_o judas_n when_o they_o have_v draw_v he_o to_o betray_v his_o master_n when_o he_o in_o the_o anguish_n of_o his_o soul_n cry_v to_o they_o mat._n 27._o 4._o i_o have_v sin_v in_o betray_v the_o innocent_a blood_n they_o say_v what_o be_v that_o to_o we_o see_v thou_o to_o it_o but_o say_v they_o be_v willing_a to_o take_v our_o part_n alas_o they_o can_v do_v we_o no_o good_a when_o god_n shall_v call_v we_o unto_o a_o account_n they_o can_v shroud_v we_o from_o god_n wrath_n earthly_a prince_n be_v fain_o oft_o to_o spare_v malefactor_n because_o they_o be_v too_o strong_a and_o have_v many_o to_o join_v with_o they_o as_o david_n do_v joab_n 2._o sam._n 3._o 39_o but_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o do_v so_o pro._n 11._o 21._o though_o hand_n join_v in_o hand_n the_o wicked_a shall_v not_o go_v unpunished_a what_o be_v the_o example_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o stand_v against_o god_n it_o be_v as_o easy_a for_o he_o to_o destroy_v a_o whole_a world_n of_o man_n as_o one_o man_n behold_v the_o nation_n be_v as_o the_o drop_n of_o a_o bucket_n and_o be_v count_v as_o the_o small_a dust_n of_o the_o balance_n behold_v he_o take_v up_o the_o isle_n as_o a_o very_a little_a thing_n all_o nation_n before_o he_o be_v as_o nothing_o and_o they_o be_v count_v to_o he_o less_o than_o nothing_o but_o vanity_n isaiah_n
strength_n of_o his_o spirit_n support_v and_o enable_v he_o to_o bear_v it_o the_o spirit_n itself_o will_v help_v his_o infirmity_n rom._n 8._o 26._o 1._o cor._n 10._o 13._o god_n be_v faithful_a that_o will_v not_o suffer_v you_o to_o be_v tempt_v above_o that_o you_o be_v able_a four_o he_o be_v assure_v that_o whatsoever_o affliction_n god_n lay_v upon_o he_o it_o shall_v in_o the_o end_n tend_v to_o his_o good_a and_o to_o the_o furtherance_n of_o his_o salvation_n rom._n 8._o 28._o five_o he_o know_v the_o end_n will_v pay_v for_o all_o and_o that_o after_o a_o while_n all_o tear_n shall_v be_v wipe_v from_o his_o eye_n and_o he_o shall_v enjoy_v unspeakable_a comfort_n psal._n 27._o 13._o i_o shall_v have_v faint_v except_o i_o have_v believe_v to_o see_v the_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o man_n that_o want_v this_o assurance_n of_o his_o salvation_n though_o he_o have_v all_o the_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n to_o secure_v and_o quiet_a his_o heart_n and_o to_o make_v it_o merry_a yet_o can_v he_o never_o attain_v unto_o true_a joy_n and_o comfort_n nor_o keep_v off_o extremity_n of_o grief_n when_o the_o evil_a day_n shall_v come_v upon_o he_o if_o any_o shall_v object_v against_o this_o that_o many_o of_o god_n child_n that_o be_v object_n assure_v of_o their_o salvation_n be_v yet_o much_o oppress_v with_o heaviness_n and_o their_o life_n be_v very_o uncomfortable_a and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o many_o who_o want_v this_o assurance_n be_v know_v to_o have_v the_o light_a and_o merry_a heart_n of_o all_o other_o man_n i_o answer_v for_o the_o faithful_a first_o that_o they_o have_v much_o inward_a joy_n though_o they_o show_v it_o not_o as_o other_o man_n yea_o oft_o time_n when_o their_o life_n seem_v most_o answ._n uncomfortable_a to_o the_o worldly_a man_n and_o most_o full_a of_o misery_n yea_o as_o solomon_n say_v of_o wicked_a man_n joy_n pro._n 13._o 14._o even_o in_o laughter_n the_o heart_n be_v sorrowful_a so_o of_o the_o heaviness_n of_o the_o godly_a it_o may_v be_v say_v oft_o time_n that_o even_o in_o weep_v their_o heart_n be_v full_a of_o comfort_n 2_o cor._n 6._o 10._o as_o sorrow_v yet_o always_o rejoice_v that_o as_o christ_n say_v vers._n 32._o of_o this_o chapter_n i_o have_v meat_n that_o you_o know_v not_o of_o so_o have_v the_o godly_a much_o comfort_n which_o worldling_n have_v no_o skill_n of_o pro._n 14._o 10._o the_o stranger_n shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o his_o joy_n 2_o though_o they_o be_v sometime_o in_o great_a heaviness_n indeed_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o shall_v be_v overcome_v of_o it_o but_o they_o shall_v certain_o recover_v themselves_o as_o 2_o cor._n 4._o 8._o we_o be_v afflict_v on_o every_o side_n yet_o be_v we_o not_o in_o distress_n in_o poverty_n yet_o not_o overcome_v of_o poverty_n we_o be_v persecute_v but_o not_o forsake_v cast_v down_o but_o perish_v not_o because_o they_o have_v ever_o in_o they_o the_o seed_n and_o root_n of_o true_a joy_n psal._n 97._o 11._o light_n be_v sow_v for_o the_o righteous_a and_o gladness_n for_o the_o upright_o in_o heart_n so_o that_o as_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o he_o that_o be_v once_o true_o regenerate_v to_o sin_n as_o other_o man_n do_v because_o the_o seed_n of_o god_n and_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n abide_v in_o he_o 1_o joh._n 3._o 9_o so_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o he_o that_o have_v once_o attain_v to_o true_a assurance_n of_o his_o salvation_n to_o sorrow_n as_o other_o man_n do_v or_o to_o perish_v in_o despair_n because_o the_o seed_n of_o god_n the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n which_o be_v call_v the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n psal._n 45._o 7._o abide_v in_o he_o for_o this_o be_v that_o that_o christ_n say_v of_o this_o joy_n joh._n 16._o 22._o your_o heart_n shall_v rejoice_v and_o your_o joy_n shall_v no_o man_n take_v from_o you_o and_o that_o make_v david_n say_v so_o confident_o psal._n 37._o 37._o mark_v the_o upright_a man_n and_o behold_v the_o just_a for_o the_o end_n of_o that_o man_n be_v peace_n and_o as_o for_o that_o which_o be_v object_v concern_v the_o joy_n of_o they_o that_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o their_o salvation_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o many_o time_n their_o mirth_n be_v but_o force_v and_o counterfeit_a and_o when_o outward_o they_o make_v show_v of_o much_o mirth_n their_o heart_n within_o they_o be_v as_o heavy_a as_o lead_v 2_o cor._n 5._o 1●…_n they_o rejoice_v in_o the_o face_n and_o not_o in_o the_o heart_n pro._n 14._o 13._o even_o in_o laugh_v the_o heart_n be_v sorrowful_a and_o second_o though_o they_o seem_v very_o secure_a and_o pleasant_a in_o the_o time_n of_o prosperity_n while_o like_o drunken_a or_o mad_a man_n they_o have_v no_o apprehension_n nor_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o estate_n yet_o in_o the_o evil_a day_n when_o their_o conscience_n shall_v be_v awaken_v their_o joy_n will_v fail_v they_o and_o stand_v they_o in_o no_o stead_n that_o which_o be_v say_v of_o riches_n pro._n 11._o 4._o may_v be_v say_v likewise_o of_o merry_a company_n good_a cheer_n pastime_n and_o music_n they_o will_v not_o avail_v in_o the_o day_n of_o wrath_n while_o they_o be_v out_o of_o god_n presence_n and_o forget_v he_o and_o their_o own_o estate_n they_o be_v quiet_a and_o merry_a but_o when_o god_n glory_n shine_v but_o a_o little_a in_o their_o soul_n they_o be_v trouble_v out_o of_o measure_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o balthasar_n dan._n 5._o 6._o o_o consider_v this_o you_o that_o forget_v god_n esteem_v not_o of_o the_o joy_n of_o worldly_a man_n give_v no_o rest_n to_o yourselves_o till_o you_o have_v get_v good_a assurance_n of_o application_n your_o salvation_n and_o of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n for_o without_o this_o nothing_o will_v be_v able_a to_o give_v you_o content_a and_o comfort_n in_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n and_o in_o the_o evil_a day_n let_v this_o be_v thy_o desire_n and_o daily_a prayer_n to_o god_n that_o be_v david_n psalm_n 106._o 4_o 5._o remember_v i_o o_o lord_n with_o the_o favour_n of_o thy_o people_n visit_v i_o with_o thy_o salvation_n that_o i_o may_v see_v the_o felicity_n of_o thy_o choose_a and_o rejoice_v with_o their_o joy_n the_o second_o preseruative_n against_o excessive_a sorrow_n be_v the_o care_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n that_o man_n that_o in_o all_o thing_n be_v careful_a to_o please_v god_n and_o to_o keep_v 2._o his_o conscience_n pure_a that_o he_o fall_v not_o into_o any_o know_a and_o grievous_a sin_n shall_v ever_o have_v a_o quiet_a and_o cheerful_a heart_n 2_o cor._n 1._o 12._o our_o rejoice_v be_v this_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o conscience_n that_o in_o simplicity_n and_o godly_a pureness_n we_o have_v have_v our_o conversation_n in_o the_o world_n yea_o this_o will_v make_v a_o man_n cheerful_a at_o all_o time_n and_o preserve_v he_o from_o sorrow_n not_o in_o prosperity_n only_o but_o even_o in_o adversity_n he_o that_o be_v of_o a_o merry_a heart_n he_o mean_v who_o heart_n be_v make_v merry_a this_o way_n even_o with_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n have_v a_o continual_a feast_n pro._n 15._o 15._o and_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o apostle_n ephes._n 6._o 14._o call_v righteousness_n the_o breastplate_n that_o will_v defend_v the_o heart_n even_o in_o the_o evil_a day_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o man_n that_o have_v no_o care_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n but_o give_v himself_o liberty_n to_o live_v in_o any_o one_o know_a sin_n can_v never_o have_v any_o sound_a joy_n in_o his_o heart_n but_o must_v needs_o be_v overcome_v of_o sorrow_n and_o swallow_v up_o with_o heaviness_n when_o affliction_n shall_v come_v upon_o he_o for_o sin_n certain_o will_v bring_v sorrow_n soon_o or_o late_a not_o only_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v there_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n mat._n 8._o 12._o but_o even_o in_o this_o life_n sin_n will_v bring_v sorrow_n it_o be_v the_o proper_a and_o natural_a effect_n of_o sin_n and_o can_v be_v avoid_v pro._n 29._o 6._o in_o the_o transgression_n of_o a_o evil_a man_n there_o be_v a_o snare_n that_o be_v matter_n of_o sorrow_n and_o tear_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o verse_n but_o the_o righteous_a do_v sing_v and_o rejoice_v they_o that_o have_v multiply_v their_o sin_n shall_v have_v their_o sorrow_n multiply_v yea_o great_a sin_n will_v bring_v great_a sorrow_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o judas_n mat._n 27._o 3_o 5._o and_o many_o such_o example_n god_n give_v man_n in_o every_o age_n neither_o have_v it_o be_v so_o with_o such_o as_o judas_n only_o but_o even_o with_o
you_o shall_v say_v i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o they_o q._n d._n thou_o shall_v think_v of_o thy_o creator_n and_o make_v thy_o peace_n with_o he_o serve_v and_o fear_v he_o now_o present_o even_o in_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o youth_n for_o the_o evil_a day_n will_v certain_o come_v upon_o every_o man_n he_o speak_v proper_o there_o of_o age_n and_o sickness_n but_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v likewise_o of_o all_o time_n of_o bitter_a affliction_n for_o at_o that_o time_n thou_o shall_v have_v no_o lust_n or_o pleasure_n to_o think_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n and_o this_o be_v that_o also_o which_o the_o apostle_n mean_v ephes._n 6._o 13._o take_v unto_o you_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a to_o resist_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n when_o shall_v they_o thus_o provide_v themselves_o of_o armour_n why_o now_o before_o the_o evil_a day_n come_v what_o mean_v he_o by_o the_o evil_a day_n certain_o the_o day_n of_o affliction_n and_o temptation_n which_o every_o man_n must_v look_v for_o what_o man_n will_v have_v his_o armour_n to_o seek_v when_o he_o be_v to_o go_v into_o the_o field_n and_o buckle_v with_o his_o enemy_n this_o be_v the_o wisdom_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o learn_v of_o the_o silly_a pismire_n pro._n 6._o 7._o she_o prepare_v her_o meat_n in_o the_o summer_n and_o gather_v her_o food_n in_o harvest_n and_o indeed_o there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o a_o thousand_o but_o he_o be_v thus_o wise_a for_o his_o body_n he_o make_v provision_n for_o his_o corn_n and_o fodder_n and_o fuel_n now_o in_o summer_n and_o harness_a and_o lay_v it_o up_o against_o winter_n who_o be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o have_v his_o provision_n to_o make_v in_o winter_n or_o his_o seed_n to_o sow_v in_o harvest_n when_o he_o shall_v reap_v and_o thus_o wise_a shall_v we_o be_v for_o our_o soul_n prou._n 10._o 14._o wise_a man_n lay_v up_o knowledge_n beforehand_o he_o treasure_n up_o such_o ground_n of_o comfort_n through_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o word_n as_o he_o may_v not_o be_v to_o seek_v in_o time_n of_o need_n what_o man_n will_v have_v his_o cuidence_n to_o seek_v when_o his_o cause_n be_v to_o be_v try_v and_o what_o man_n be_v there_o that_o have_v not_o need_n of_o this_o exhortation_n what_o man_n be_v there_o that_o play_v the_o good_a husband_n for_o his_o soul_n that_o labour_n and_o take_v pain_n to_o provide_v for_o it_o in_o the_o summer_n time_n when_o the_o weather_n be_v fair_a i_o mean_v in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o youth_n and_o health_n and_o peace_n and_o cheerfulness_n that_o do_v not_o full_o purpose_n and_o resolve_v with_o himself_o to_o go_v about_o his_o business_n far_o more_o serious_o and_o careful_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v old_a or_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v sick_a on_o his_o last_o sickness_n than_o ever_o he_o do_v yet_o nay_o it_o be_v certain_a there_o be_v many_o a_o man_n that_o will_v not_o for_o all_o the_o world_n die_v in_o that_o state_n that_o now_o he_o be_v in_o have_v no_o better_a assurance_n of_o his_o salvation_n than_o yet_o he_o have_v have_v no_o better_o repent_v than_o yet_o he_o have_v do_v and_o yet_o he_o never_o take_v any_o course_n to_o better_v his_o estate_n because_o he_o be_v persuade_v in_o his_o heart_n he_o may_v do_v that_o soon_o enough_o hereafter_o and_o that_o the_o fit_a time_n of_o all_o for_o this_o business_n will_v be_v the_o time_n of_o sickness_n and_o affliction_n and_o quite_o contrary_a to_o salomon_n counsel_n he_o say_v this_o to_o his_o own_o heart_n i_o will_v not_o remember_v my_o creator_n in_o the_o day_n of_o my_o youth_n before_o the_o evil_a day_n come_v and_o the_o year_n approach_v wherein_o i_o shall_v say_v i_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o they_o but_o then_o lo_o will_v i_o prepare_v myself_o for_o god_n and_o make_v my_o peace_n with_o he_o then_o will_v i_o send_v for_o the_o preacher_n and_o he_o shall_v give_v i_o good_a counsel_n out_o of_o god_n word_n and_o pray_v for_o i_o then_o will_v i_o repent_v i_o of_o all_o my_o sin_n and_o take_v order_n by_o my_o will_n for_o restitution_n of_o all_o that_o i_o have_v unjust_o get_v then_o will_v i_o become_v a_o new_a man_n i_o will_v therefore_o give_v you_o some_o reason_n out_o of_o god_n word_n that_o may_v enforce_v this_o exhortation_n upon_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o man_n the_o first_o reason_n be_v the_o uncertainty_n of_o this_o life_n there_o be_v no_o man_n but_o he_o may_v die_v sudden_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v assure_v when_o he_o lay_v he_o down_o at_o night_n that_o he_o shall_v rise_v in_o the_o morning_n when_o he_o rise_v in_o the_o morning_n that_o he_o shall_v ever_o go_v to_o bed_n again_o therefore_o remember_v thy_o creator_n now_o present_o without_o delay_n repent_v and_o seek_v assurance_n of_o his_o favour_n put_v it_o not_o off_o no_o not_o for_o a_o day_n for_o no_o man_n know_v what_o may_v befall_v he_o before_o to_o morrow_n james_n 4._o 13_o 14._o go_v to_o now_o say_v the_o apostle_n you_o that_o say_v to_o day_n or_o to_o morrow_n we_o will_v go_v into_o such_o a_o city_n and_o continue_v there_o a_o year_n and_o buy_v and_o sell_v and_o get_v gain_v and_o yet_o you_o can_v tell_v what_o shall_v be_v to_o morrow_n for_o what_o be_v your_o life_n it_o be_v even_o a_o vapour_n confider_v with_o thyself_o that_o thou_o may_v die_v sudden_o for_o first_o what_o year_n be_v there_o wherein_o thou_o have_v not_o hear_v of_o sundry_a good_a man_n and_o bad_a of_o all_o sort_n who_o god_n have_v take_v away_o sudden_o and_o not_o give_v they_o one_o day_n nor_o one_o hour_n respite_n to_o prepare_v themselves_o for_o he_o and_o what_o assurance_n have_v thou_o that_o he_o will_v deal_v better_o with_o thou_o this_o solomon_n speak_v as_o of_o a_o thing_n that_o have_v fall_v out_o in_o all_o age_n and_o whereunto_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n as_o well_o good_a as_o bad_a have_v be_v subject_a eccl._n 9_o 12._o for_o neither_o do_v man_n know_v his_o time_n but_o as_o the_o fish_n which_o be_v take_v in_o a_o evil_a net_n and_o as_o the_o bird_n that_o be_v catch_v in_o a_o snare_n so_o be_v the_o child_n of_o man_n snare_v in_o the_o evil_a time_n when_o it_o fall_v upon_o they_o sudden_o but_o as_o every_o man_n even_o the_o best_a may_v die_v sudden_o so_o the_o carnal_a and_o wicked_a man_n that_o presumptuous_o put_v off_o his_o repentance_n upon_o this_o hope_n that_o god_n will_v not_o take_v he_o away_o so_o sudden_o but_o he_o will_v give_v he_o space_n and_o time_n of_o visitation_n before_o his_o death_n as_o he_o do_v to_o most_o man_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o fear_n he_o shall_v die_v sudden_o for_o god_n have_v oft_o smite_v many_o such_o man_n in_o the_o act_n of_o their_o sin_n he_o do_v so_o to_o zimri_n and_o cozby_n num._n 25._o 8._o and_o with_o elah_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n 1_o king_n 16._o 9_o 10._o and_o with_o king_n herod_n also_o act_v 12._o 23._o and_o have_v oft_o threaten_v this_o unto_o ungodly_a man_n psal._n 64_o 7._o god_n will_v shoot_v a_o arrow_n at_o they_o sudden_o their_o stroke_n shall_v be_v at_o once_o and_o 73._o 19_o how_o sudden_o be_v they_o destroy_v perish_a and_o utter_o consume_v 1_o thes._n 5._o 3._o when_o they_o shall_v say_v peace_n and_o safety_n then_o shall_v come_v upon_o they_o sudden_a destruction_n if_o any_o shall_v object_v that_o if_o this_o be_v so_o than_o most_o man_n shall_v die_v sudden_o whereas_o experience_n show_v that_o not_o one_o of_o a_o hundred_o do_v so_o i_o answer_v that_o as_o no_o godly_a man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o die_v sudden_o that_o fear_v always_o and_o be_v at_o peace_n with_o god_n and_o ever_o prepare_v for_o death_n so_o there_o be_v not_o one_o wicked_a man_n of_o a_o hundred_o but_o he_o die_v sudden_o for_o though_o the_o lord_n give_v he_o a_o great_a space_n and_o he_o be_v never_o so_o long_o sick_a before_o his_o death_n yet_o he_o be_v still_o ready_a to_o think_v he_o shall_v live_v a_o little_a long_o and_o so_o death_n come_v upon_o he_o before_o he_o look_v or_o prepare_v for_o it_o this_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v 1_o thes._n 5._o 4._o but_o you_o brethren_n be_v not_o in_o darkness_n that_o that_o day_n shall_v come_v upon_o you_o as_o it_o be_v a_o thief_n q._n d._n to_o no_o true_a believer_n it_o come_v as_o a_o thief_n but_o to_o every_o one_o that_o be_v in_o darkness_n it_o do_v the_o second_o reason_n that_o may_v just_o make_v a_o man_n afraid_a to_o put_v off_o the_o care_n of_o provide_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o soul_n
i_o say_v in_o my_o haste_n i_o be_o cast_v out_o of_o thy_o presence_n and_o 116._o 11._o i_o say_v in_o my_o haste_n all_o man_n be_v liar_n the_o purpose_n and_o desire_n and_o resolution_n of_o the_o heart_n in_o every_o regenerate_a man_n be_v to_o please_v god_n in_o all_o thing_n isaiah_n 26._o 8._o the_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v to_o thy_o name_n and_o to_o the_o remembrance_n of_o thou_o see_v a_o example_n of_o this_o in_o two_o that_o fall_v into_o the_o foul_a sin_n of_o any_o regenerate_a man_n we_o read_v of_o in_o scripture_n david_n and_o peter_n what_o the_o purpose_n and_o full_a resolution_n of_o david_n heart_n be_v you_o may_v see_v psal._n 119._o 106._o i_o have_v swear_v and_o will_v perform_v it_o that_o i_o will_v keep_v thy_o righteous_a judgement_n how_o fall_v he_o then_o into_o so_o foul_a a_o sin_n sure_o he_o be_v sudden_o overtake_v with_o some_o passion_n of_o lust_n before_o he_o be_v aware_a and_o so_o he_o fall_v so_o likewise_o of_o peter_n we_o may_v see_v what_o the_o full_a purpose_n and_o resolution_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v matth._n 26._o 33._o 35._o though_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v offend_v by_o thou_o yet_o will_v i_o never_o be_v offend_v though_o i_o shall_v die_v with_o thou_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v thou_o how_o fall_v he_o then_o into_o so_o foul_a a_o sin_n sure_o he_o be_v sudden_o overtake_v with_o a_o passion_n of_o fear_n before_o he_o be_v aware_a and_o so_o he_o fall_v now_o it_o be_v quite_o contrary_a with_o the_o unregenerate_a man_n for_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o sin_n pro._n 14._o 16._o the_o fool_n rage_v and_o be_v careless_a he_o commit_v sin_n with_o prepense_a purpose_n and_o determination_n of_o heart_n psal_n 364._o he_o imagine_v mischief_n on_o his_o bed_n he_o set_v himself_o upon_o a_o way_n that_o be_v not_o good_a and_o do_v not_o abhor_v evil_a rom._n 13._o 14._o he_o take_v think_v for_o the_o flesh_n to_o fulfil_v the_o lust_n of_o it_o yea_o as_o if_o their_o inclination_n to_o evil_a by_o nature_n be_v not_o strong_a enough_o they_o draw_v on_o iniquity_n with_o cord_n of_o vanity_n and_o sin_n as_o with_o cart_n rope_n isaiah_n 5._o 18._o the_o second_o difference_n be_v in_o the_o diverse_a disposition_n of_o their_o heart_n even_o at_o that_o time_n when_o they_o do_v sin_n the_o regenerate_a man_n never_o fall_v total_o into_o any_o sin_n nor_o commit_v it_o with_o the_o whole_a sway_n of_o his_o soul_n with_o full_a consent_n of_o his_o will_n but_o when_o the_o flesh_n tempt_v and_o draw_v he_o to_o sin_n the_o spirit_n resist_v the_o motion_n and_o draw_v another_o way_n even_o when_o they_o sleep_v their_o heart_n wake_v cant._n 5._o 2._o 1._o john_n 3._o 9_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o neither_o can_v he_o sin_n because_o the_o seed_n of_o god_n remain_v in_o he_o gal._n 5._o 17._o the_o flesh_n lust_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o spirit_n against_o the_o fl●…sh_n and_o these_o be_v contrary_a one_o to_o another_o so_o that_o you_o can_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o you_o will_v he_o obey_v sin_n as_o the_o slave_n do_v his_o master_n rom._n 7._o 14._o this_o though_o it_o be_v not_o always_o feel_v by_o himself_o yet_o to_o another_o that_o be_v a_o spiritual_a man_n it_o will_v appear_v by_o two_o note_n 1._o try_v they_o even_o when_o they_o be_v at_o the_o worst_a and_o some_o grace_n will_v appear_v in_o they_o blow_v away_o the_o ash_n and_o you_o shall_v discern_v some_o sparkle_n of_o grace_n in_o they_o see_v this_o in_o david_n readiness_n to_o yield_v to_o the_o reproof_n of_o nathan_n and_o to_o confess_v his_o sin_n even_o when_o he_o have_v fall_v so_o fearful_o and_o lyen_fw-we so_o long_o in_o his_o sin_n 2._o sam._n 12._o 13._o and_o in_o pray_v and_o cry_v to_o god_n and_o call_v he_o most_o affectionate_o his_o god_n even_o when_o he_o think_v in_o his_o passion_n and_o tentation_n that_o god_n have_v forsake_v he_o psal._n 22._o 1._o as_o if_o thou_o come_v to_o the_o poor_a distress_a christian_a that_o complain_v he_o be_v but_o a_o hypocrite_n and_o utter_v many_o word_n savour_v of_o nothing_o but_o infidelity_n and_o despair_n and_o ask_v he_o whether_o he_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o offend_v god_n and_o love_v not_o his_o child_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o can_v deny_v this_o or_o if_o he_o do_v yet_o may_v thou_o evident_o discern_v that_o he_o speak_v false_o against_o himself_o 2._o observe_v they_o and_o thou_o shall_v find_v their_o joy_n be_v not_o as_o it_o have_v be_v after_o once_o they_o have_v yield_v to_o the_o temptation_n that_o make_v david_n cry_v make_v i_o to_o hear_v joy_n and_o gladness_n that_o the_o bone_n that_o thou_o have_v break_v may_v rejoice_v psal._n 51._o 8._o so_o we_o shall_v find_v the_o two_o disciple_n that_o be_v go_v to_o emaus_n when_o they_o begin_v to_o doubt_v and_o waver_v be_v make_v sad_a in_o heart_n by_o it_o luke_n 24._o 17._o it_o be_v with_o they_o in_o this_o case_n as_o it_o be_v with_o rebecca_n when_o she_o feel_v the_o two_o twin_n struggle_v with_o she_o gen._n 25._o 22._o when_o they_o say_v they_o have_v no_o faith_n nor_o grace_n in_o they_o ask_v they_o whence_o then_o come_v this_o sorrow_n and_o paleness_n and_o loss_n of_o sleep_n etc._n etc._n now_o the_o wicked_a man_n be_v of_o a_o quite_o contrary_a disposition_n for_o he_o be_v all_o flesh_n and_o have_v no_o such_o resistance_n in_o himself_o unless_o it_o be_v first_o from_o the_o light_n of_o his_o natural_a conscience_n for_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o law_n be_v write_v in_o their_o heart_n as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v roman_n 2._o 15._o or_o second_o from_o the_o repugnancy_n of_o his_o lust_n between_o themselves_o their_o lust_n war_n in_o their_o member_n james_n 4._o 1._o luke_n 11._o 27._o all_o thing_n be_v at_o peace_n he_o sin_v willing_o and_o with_o all_o his_o heart_n john_n 8._o 44._o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o your_o father_n you_o will_v do_v a_o three_o difference_n be_v the_o diverse_a disposition_n of_o heart_n after_o they_o have_v commit_v sin_n for_o the_o godly_a be_v wont_a to_o find_v much_o pain_n and_o grief_n in_o his_o heart_n much_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n even_o for_o the_o small_a sin_n he_o have_v commit_v against_o god_n as_o we_o see_v in_o david_n his_o heart_n smite_v he_o for_o cut_v off_o the_o skirt_n of_o saul_n garment_n and_o for_o give_v commandment_n for_o the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n 1._o sam._n 24._o 6._o 2._o sam._n 24._o 10._o and_o in_o paul_n the_o remnant_n of_o original_a sin_n in_o he_o make_v he_o cry_v out_o o_o wretched_a man_n that_o i_o be_o etc._n etc._n rom._n 7._o 24._o if_o sin_n be_v a_o infirmity_n it_o will_v put_v the_o heart_n to_o this_o pain_n as_o all_o bodily_a infirmity_n will_v the_o body_n and_o though_o david_n lie_v long_o in_o his_o sin_n before_o he_o can_v recover_v himself_o by_o sound_a repentance_n yet_o from_o the_o day_n he_o commit_v his_o sin_n this_o remorse_n begin_v in_o he_o and_o he_o never_o find_v true_a joy_n again_o till_o he_o have_v effectual_o repent_v psal._n 51._o 8._o now_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o the_o wicked_a but_o after_o many_o foul_a and_o heinous_a sin_n their_o heart_n be_v as_o quiet_a and_o as_o jocund_a as_o before_o a_o example_n of_o this_o we_o have_v in_o josephs_n brethren_n after_o they_o have_v conspire_v to_o slay_v he_o and_o be_v dissuade_v from_o it_o have_v strip_v he_o of_o his_o cote_n and_o cast_v he_o into_o a_o pit_n they_o sit_v down_o to_o eat_v bread_n gen._n 37._o 24_o 25._o another_o difference_n there_o be_v in_o the_o diverse_a disposition_n of_o their_o heart_n after_o they_o have_v commit_v sin_n which_o be_v the_o four_o and_o last_o difference_n the_o godly_a can_v continue_v in_o sin_n but_o after_o he_o have_v fall_v he_o rise_v again_o yea_o he_o obtain_v further_a strength_n against_o his_o corruption_n and_o power_n to_o forsake_v his_o sin_n so_o that_o he_o will_v not_o be_v so_o apt_a to_o fall_v into_o it_o again_o as_o he_o be_v before_o true_a it_o be_v a_o regenerate_a man_n may_v fall_v into_o the_o same_o sin_n again_o neither_o can_v any_o man_n define_v how_o oft_o and_o into_o how_o heinous_a sin_n a_o man_n that_o be_v sound_o regenerate_a may_v fall_v yet_o do_v we_o not_o find_v that_o any_o child_n of_o god_n have_v fall_v oft_o into_o the_o same_o heinous_a and_o scandalous_a sin_n indeed_o in_o a_o small_a slip_n of_o conceal_v his_o wife_n and_o cause_v she_o to_o say_v she_o be_v his_o sister_n we_o find_v abraham_n take_v twice_o gen._n
unsound_a judgement_n in_o some_o clear_a and_o manifest_a truth_n or_o other_o full_a of_o reason_v and_o opposition_n against_o it_o 1_o tim._n 6._o 5._o if_o any_o consent_v not_o to_o the_o wholesome_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o use_v vain_a disputation_n he_o know_v nothing_o say_v the_o apostle_n his_o mind_n be_v corrupt_a and_o destitute_a of_o truth_n four_o the_o knowledge_n of_o a_o regenerate_a man_n may_v be_v discern_v by_o this_o it_o have_v power_n to_o reform_v and_o rule_v his_o heart_n and_o work_n in_o he_o a_o care_n of_o practice_n and_o obedience_n luke_n 8._o 15._o they_o that_o with_o a_o honest_a and_o good_a heart_n bear_v the_o word_n keep_v it_o and_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n with_o patience_n 1_o john_n 2._o 3_o 4._o hereby_o we_o be_v sure_o we_o know_v he_o if_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n he_o that_o say_v i_o know_v he_o and_o keep_v not_o his_o commandment_n be_v a_o liar_n esa._n 2._o 3._o he_o shall_v teach_v we_o his_o way_n and_o we_o will_v walk_v in_o his_o path_n yea_o sanctify_a knowledge_n make_v a_o man_n strong_a to_o resist_v and_o stand_v against_o tentation_n the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v wisdom_n and_o to_o depart_v from_o evil_n be_v understanding_n job_n 28_o 28._o prou._n 24._o 5._o a_o wise_a man_n be_v strong_a for_o a_o man_n of_o understanding_n increase_v his_o strength_n he_o that_o can_v say_v as_o psal._n 17._o 4._o by_o the_o word_n of_o thy_o lip_n i_o have_v keep_v i_o from_o the_o path_n of_o the_o destroyer_n be_v a_o happy_a man_n he_o know_v the_o truth_n with_o a_o save_a knowledge_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o natural_a man_n knowledge_n swim_v in_o his_o brain_n and_o have_v no_o power_n in_o his_o heart_n it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o son_n of_o eli_n they_o be_v wicked_a man_n and_o know_v not_o the_o lord_n 1_o sam._n 2._o 12._o they_o have_v no_o jot_n of_o sanctify_a knowledge_n in_o they_o five_o and_o last_o the_o regenerate_a man_n though_o he_o find_v himself_o want_v sometime_o in_o these_o property_n of_o sanctify_a knowledge_n yet_o feel_v he_o this_o ignorance_n and_o bewail_v it_o and_o what_o measure_n of_o knowledge_n soever_o he_o have_v attain_v to_o he_o satisfy_v not_o himself_o in_o it_o but_o the_o more_o he_o know_v the_o more_o he_o desire_v to_o increase_v in_o knowledge_n this_o you_o shall_v see_v in_o david_n open_v thou_o my_o eye_n that_o i_o may_v behold_v wondrous_a thing_n out_o of_o thy_o law_n teach_v i_o thy_o statute_n make_v i_o to_o understand_v the_o way_n of_o thy_o precept_n psalm_n 119._o 18_o 26_o 27._o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o natural_a man_n be_v well_o persuade_v of_o his_o own_o knowledge_n think_v he_o know_v enough_o and_o be_v full_a woe_n be_v to_o you_o that_o be_v full_a luke_n 6._o 25._o the_o second_o grace_n wherein_o i_o tell_v you_o we_o be_v to_o make_v trial_n of_o the_o repentance_n soundness_n of_o our_o heart_n be_v repentance_n by_o which_o i_o mean_v in_o this_o place_n only_o the_o forsake_v of_o sin_n now_o there_o be_v no_o one_o grace_n in_o soundness_n and_o uprightness_n in_o that_o man_n heart_n that_o have_v not_o unfeigned_o repent_v and_o forsake_v his_o sin_n act_n 11._o 18._o then_o have_v god_n also_o to_o the_o gentile_n grant_v repentance_n unto_o life_n unless_o we_o can_v be_v able_a to_o say_v these_o and_o these_o sin_n i_o know_v i_o have_v leave_v sure_o we_o have_v not_o repent_v we_o be_v sometime_o foolish_a disobedient_a deceive_v serve_v diverse_a lust_n and_o pleasure_n live_v in_o malice_n and_o envy_n hateful_a and_o hate_v one_o another_o tit._n 3._o 3_o and_o the_o man_n that_o have_v unfeigned_o repent_v and_o forsake_v his_o sin_n doubtless_o have_v a_o upright_a heart_n thus_o say_v david_n of_o himself_o psal._n 18._o 23._o i_o be_v upright_o before_o he_o and_o keep_v myself_o from_o my_o iniquity_n for_o he_o that_o have_v repent_v be_v justify_v and_o have_v his_o sin_n forgive_v he_o act._n 5._o 31._o christ_n be_v call_v a_o prince_n and_o saviour_n to_o give_v repentance_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n if_o yan_a man_n shall_v ask_v may_v not_o some_o natural_a man_n forsake_v and_o leave_v the_o sin_n they_o have_v live_v in_o i_o answer_v yes_o peter_n speak_v of_o some_o temporary_n and_o hypocrite_n that_o have_v escape_v the_o filthiness_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o pet._n 2._o 20._o and_o our_o saviour_n of_o one_o that_o have_v the_o unclean_a spirit_n cast_v out_o of_o he_o and_o his_o house_n sweep_v and_o garnish_v matth._n 12._o 44._o but_o these_o difference_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o repentance_n of_o the_o regenerate_a and_o natural_a man_n 1._o the_o regenerate_a man_n forsake_v sin_n of_o conscience_n to_o god_n even_o because_o he_o know_v god_n have_v forbid_v it_o be_v offend_v and_o dishonour_v by_o it_o as_o his_o sorrow_n for_o sin_n be_v according_a to_o god_n 2._o cor._n 79._o so_o be_v his_o forsake_v of_o sin_n also_o 2._o cor._n 7._o 10._o yea_o his_o forsake_v of_o his_o sin_n grow_v though_o not_o only_o yet_o chief_o from_o the_o knowledge_n he_o have_v of_o god_n mercy_n and_o from_o the_o love_n he_o bear_v to_o god_n for_o his_o goodness_n he_o forsake_v his_o evil_a way_n and_o return_n to_o the_o lord_n out_o of_o this_o hope_n and_o persuasion_n that_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o he_o and_o that_o our_o god_n will_v abundant_o pardon_v isaiah_n 55._o 7._o he_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o goodness_n hos._n 3._o 5._o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o bring_v salvation_n the_o gospel_n which_o make_v know_v to_o we_o god_n love_n in_o christ_n have_v teach_v he_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n and_o worldly_a lust_n tit._n 2._o 11_o 12._o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o hypocrite_n forsake_v his_o sin_n or_o rather_o seem_v so_o to_o do_v first_o for_o that_o he_o want_v mean_n to_o follow_v they_o as_o of_o old_a or_o second_o no_o occasion_n be_v offer_v to_o show_v his_o corruption_n in_o three_o or_o out_o of_o respect_n he_o have_v to_o his_o credit_n with_o man_n four_a or_o out_o of_o the_o apprehension_n of_o god_n wrath_n only_o 2._o the_o regenerate_a man_n forsake_v not_o one_o or_o two_o but_o all_o know_a sin_n why_o then_o there_o be_v no_o man_n regenerate_v will_n you_o say_v for_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o sin_v all_o james_n 2._o 3._o but_o my_o meaning_n be_v though_o he_o can_v shake_v off_o every_o sin_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o know_a sin_n that_o willing_o he_o give_v liberty_n to_o himself_o in_o be_v it_o small_a or_o great_a when_o once_o it_o be_v discover_v to_o he_o to_o be_v a_o sin_n he_o make_v a_o conscience_n of_o it_o as_o daniel_n do_v of_o defile_v himself_o with_o the_o king_n meat_n dan._n 1._o 8._o he_o keep_v god_n law_n and_o his_o conscience_n to_o obey_v it_o as_o the_o apple_n of_o his_o eye_n which_o the_o least_o more_o will_v offend_v pro._n 7._o 2._o this_o be_v call_v preciseness_n and_o foolish_a niceness_n i_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o note_n of_o a_o hypocrite_n to_o be_v precise_a and_o strict_a in_o small_a matter_n and_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o gross_a sin_n to_o tithe_v mi●…t_a and_o cummin_n and_o to_o neglect_v the_o weighty_a point_n of_o the_o law_n to_o strain_n at_o a_o gnat_n and_o to_o swallow_v a_o camel_n mat._n 23._o 23_o 24._o yet_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v of_o the_o least_o sin_n tush_o that_o be_v nothing_o if_o i_o never_o do_v worse_o i_o shall_v do_v well_o enough_o doubtless_o that_o man_n have_v no_o soundness_n in_o his_o heart_n james_n 2._o 10_o 11._o whosoever_o shall_v keep_v the_o whole_a law_n yet_o fail_v in_o one_o point_n be_v guilty_a of_o all_o for_o he_o that_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n say_v also_o thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v the_o least_o sin_n commit_v wilful_o and_o presumptuous_o become_v dangerous_a and_o damnable_a the_o soul_n that_o d●…th_v aught_o presumptuous_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o among_o his_o people_n as_o the_o man_n be_v by_o god_n express_a commandment_n that_o have_v in_o that_o sort_n but_o gather_v a_o few_o stick_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n day_n num._n 15._o 30._o 32._o on_o the_o other_o side_n no_o natural_a man_n or_o hypocrite_n ever_o make_v conscience_n of_o all_o sin_n but_o either_o he_o have_v some_o one_o sin_n that_o be_v his_o belove_a sin_n which_o he_o will_v not_o part_v with_o as_o herod_n have_v mar._n 6._o 20._o or_o of_o many_o sin_n which_o he_o count_v small_a he_o make_v no_o conscience_n at_o all_o but_o even_o despise_v his_o way_n in_o they_o as_o solomon_n speak_v pro._n 19_o 16._o 3._o the_o regenerate_a man_n though_o he_o slip_v often_o yet_o
second_o so_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v call_v he_o show_v strange_a diligence_n and_o zeal_n in_o execute_v on_o ahab_n house_n and_o friend_n the_o commandment_n he_o have_v receive_v 2._o king_n 9_o 7._o compare_v with_o verse_n 14_o 18._o 24._o 33._o 2._o king_n 10._o 6._o 11._o 14._o 17._o three_o he_o destroy_v baal_n priest_n and_o image_n and_o purge_v the_o land_n of_o that_o idolatry_n 2._o king_n 10._o 21_o 28._o four_a he_o do_v all_o this_o in_o a_o zeal_n for_o god_n 2._o king_n 10._o 16._o in_o so_o much_o as_o the_o lord_n himself_o commend_v he_o for_o it_o 2._o king_n 10._o 30._o five_o he_o bear_v a_o notable_a hatred_n to_o the_o foul_a sin_n of_o jezabel_n 2._o king_n 9_o 22._o sixthly_a he_o bear_v a_o reverend_a regard_n to_o god_n word_n which_o he_o show_v by_o remember_v it_o so_o long_o and_o acknowledge_v the_o certainty_n and_o righteousness_n of_o it_o and_o his_o care_n to_o see_v it_o perform_v and_o by_o do_v that_o he_o do_v by_o direction_n of_o it_o and_o in_o obedience_n unto_o it_o 2._o king_n 9_o 25_o ●…6_n 36_o 37._o and_o persuade_v other_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o certainty_n and_o righteousness_n of_o it_o 2._o king_n 10._o 10._o seventhly_a he_o have_v a_o reverend_a respect_n to_o good_a man_n 2._o king_n 9_o 36._o and_o 10._o 10._o he_o mention_v not_o eliah_n name_n without_o title_n of_o reverence_n he_o show_v great_a respect_n to_o jehonadab_n 2._o king_n 10._o 15_o 16._o yet_o this_o man_n be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o hypocrite_n his_o heart_n be_v not_o sound_a jehu_n take_v no_o heed_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n with_o all_o his_o heart_n 2._o king_n 10._o 31._o and_o therefore_o god_n esteem_v no_o better_a of_o all_o that_o he_o do_v than_o of_o murder_n i_o will_v avenge_v the_o blood_n of_o jezreel_n upon_o the_o house_n of_o jehu_n hos._n 1._o 4._o and_o the_o principal_n if_o not_o the_o only_a thing_n whereby_o his_o hypocrisy_n be_v discover_v be_v this_o he_o do_v not_o in_o all_o point_n follow_v the_o direction_n of_o god_n law_n nor_o make_v conscience_n of_o it_o though_o he_o hate_v some_o idolatry_n as_o that_o of_o baal_n yet_o he_o hate_v not_o all_o idolatry_n he_o depart_v not_o from_o the_o idolatry_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la 2._o king_n 10._o 29._o 31._o so_o herod_n go_v very_o far_o mar._n 6._o 20._o but_o in_o this_o his_o hypocrisy_n be_v discover_v he_o can_v not_o make_v conscience_n of_o all_o that_o john_n teach_v he_o nor_o forsake_v all_o his_o know_a sin_n the_o three_o note_n of_o difference_n be_v this_o the_o regenerate_a man_n though_o he_o make_v 3._o conscience_n of_o every_o duty_n god_n have_v enjoin_v he_o yet_o make_v he_o most_o conscience_n of_o and_o be_v most_o careful_a to_o observe_v the_o great_a commandment_n and_o such_o duty_n as_o god_n have_v most_o strait_o enjoin_v this_o note_n we_o shall_v find_v give_v by_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 23._o 24._o he_o make_v it_o a_o property_n of_o hypocrite_n to_o strain_v at_o a_o gnat_n and_o swallow_v a_o camel_n this_o be_v oft_o note_v for_o a_o property_n of_o the_o hypocrite_n the_o pharisee_n be_v exceed_v precise_a for_o the_o external_a rest_n of_o the_o sabbath_n even_o more_o than_o any_o law_n of_o god_n require_v they_o to_o be_v luk._n 13._o 14_o 15._o they_o tithe_v mint_n and_o annise_v and_o cummin_n but_o they_o neglect_v the_o weighty_a matter_n of_o the_o law_n matth._n 23._o 23._o if_o you_o ask_v i_o which_o be_v those_o weighty_a matter_n of_o the_o law_n i_o answer_v they_o be_v chief_o of_o three_o kind_n first_o the_o inward_a worship_n of_o god_n thou_o shall_v shoot_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n this_o be_v the_o first_o and_o great_a commandment_n matt._n 22._o 37_o 38._o second_o judgement_n mercy_n and_o fidelity_n towards_o man_n matth._n 23._o 23._o three_o the_o duty_n of_o our_o particular_a and_o special_a calling_n this_o may_v appear_v isaiah_n 1._o 17._o learn_v to_o do_v well_o seek_v judgement_n relieve_v the_o oppress_a judge_v the_o fatherless_a plead_v for_o the_o widow_n who_o must_v do_v this_o verse_n 10._o you_o ruler_n of_o sodom_n you_o people_n of_o gomorrah_n and_o by_o the_o apostle_n oft_o beat_v upon_o this_o point_n in_o all_o their_o epistle_n the_o duty_n of_o master_n servant_n husband_n wife_n parent_n child_n subject_n pastor_n flock_n and_o by_o that_o conclusion_n paul_n make_v to_o this_o doctrine_n tit._n 2._o 15._o these_o thing_n speak_v and_o exhort_v and_o rebuke_v with_o all_o authority_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o hypocrite_n be_v more_o careful_a and_o busy_a about_o other_o man_n duty_n and_o the_o reformation_n of_o other_o man_n fault_n than_o his_o own_o he_o can_v see_v the_o least_o mote_n in_o his_o brother_n eye_n but_o can_v discern_v a_o beam_n in_o his_o own_o he_o seem_v very_o careful_a to_o reform_v the_o least_o fault_n he_o see_v in_o another_o but_o have_v no_o care_n of_o reform_v himself_o matth._n 7._o 3_o 5._o he_o bind_v heavy_a burden_n and_o grievous_a to_o be_v bear_v and_o lay_v they_o on_o other_o man_n shoulder_n but_o himself_o will_v not_o move_v they_o with_o one_o of_o his_o finger_n matth._n 23._o 4._o herein_o then_o i_o pray_v you_o make_v trial_n of_o yourselves_o if_o you_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o soundness_n of_o your_o own_o heart_n lecture_n the_o hundred_o and_o three_o october_n 1._o 1611._o john_n four_o l._n it_o follow_v that_o we_o come_v now_o to_o show_v you_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o regenerate_a and_o natural_a man_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o do_v and_o perform_v of_o they_o and_o indeed_o this_o be_v a_o principal_a thing_n we_o must_v have_v respect_n unto_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v whether_o the_o good_a duty_n we_o do_v proceed_v from_o true_a grace_n yea_o or_o no._n see_v this_o in_o that_o direction_n the_o apostle_n give_v he_o that_o give_v let_v he_o do_v it_o with_o simplicity_n he_o that_o rule_v with_o diligence_n he_o that_o show_v mercy_n with_o cheerfulness_n rom._n 12._o 8._o for_o the_o lord_n have_v oft_o note_v the_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a obedience_n of_o the_o hypocrite_n by_o this_o property_n that_o though_o he_o have_v do_v such_o work_n as_o for_o the_o matter_n of_o they_o have_v be_v right_a and_o good_a yet_o he_o have_v never_o do_v they_o in_o a_o right_a manner_n not_o with_o a_o right_a affection_n as_o it_o be_v say_v of_o amazia_n 2._o chron._n 25._o 2._o he_o do_v upright_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o not_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o be_v note_v for_o a_o property_n of_o true_a and_o save_a obedience_n when_o there_o be_v care_n not_o only_o to_o do_v the_o thing_n god_n command_v but_o to_o do_v it_o also_o in_o that_o manner_n and_o with_o that_o affection_n of_o heart_n that_o god_n have_v command_v as_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o example_n of_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n exod._n 39_o 42_o 43._o according_a to_o all_o that_o the_o lord_n command_v moses_n so_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n make_v all_o the_o work_n and_o moses_n look_v upon_o all_o the_o work_n and_o behold_v they_o have_v do_v it_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v and_o in_o the_o speech_n and_o example_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 14._o 31._o that_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o i_o love_v the_o father_n as_o the_o father_n have_v command_v i_o so_o i_o do_v not_o only_o what_o the_o father_n have_v command_v that_o i_o do_v but_o i_o do_v as_o he_o have_v command_v i_o find_v therefore_o in_o god_n word_n four_o evident_a note_n of_o difference_n between_o the_o good_a duty_n that_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o natural_a man_n and_o by_o he_o that_o have_v a_o sound_n and_o sanctify_a heart_n even_o in_o the_o manner_n of_o do_v of_o they_o the_o regenerate_a man_n intend_v and_o the_o end_n he_o aim_v at_o in_o do_v good_a duty_n be_v to_o please_v and_o honour_n god_n he_o have_v a_o single_a and_o sincere_a respect_n to_o god_n 1_o and_o nothing_o else_o he_o do_v that_o which_o he_o do_v because_o he_o know_v god_n have_v command_v it_o he_o be_v please_v with_o he_o be_v honour_v by_o that_o which_o he_o do_v the_o notice_n he_o know_v god_n will_v take_v of_o it_o his_o allowance_n and_o reward_n content_v he_o and_o he_o seek_v no_o more_o the_o regenerate_a man_n serve_v god_n even_o in_o those_o duty_n he_o perform_v to_o man_n even_o in_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o call_n rom._n 12._o 11._o not_o slothful_a to_o do_v service_n he_o mean_v one_o
duty_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o true_a grace_n be_v discern_v from_o such_o as_o proceed_v from_o some_o other_o root_n if_o a_o man_n do_v true_o love_v the_o word_n and_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o he_o will_v persevere_v in_o his_o love_n and_o profession_n and_o never_o forsake_v it_o matth._n 13._o 20_o 21._o of_o that_o hearer_n that_o hear_v the_o word_n and_o incontinent_o with_o joy_n receive_v it_o and_o endure_v but_o for_o a_o season_n our_o saviour_n say_v the_o cause_n be_v because_o he_o have_v no_o root_n in_o himself_o he_o never_o have_v sound_a heart_n and_o 1._o john_n 2._o 19_o they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o will_v have_v continue_v with_o us._n so_o be_v it_o likewise_o in_o all_o other_o good_a duty_n which_o any_o man_n have_v be_v give_v to_o if_o they_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o grace_n if_o ever_o a_o man_n do_v use_v to_o do_v they_o with_o a_o good_a heart_n he_o will_v do_v they_o still_o i_o can_v stand_v upon_o all_o good_a duty_n in_o particular_a i_o will_v instance_n but_o in_o one_o whereby_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n for_o there_o be_v the_o like_a reason_n for_o all_o if_o ever_o a_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v merciful_a and_o liberal_a in_o relieve_n god_n poor_a servant_n out_o of_o a_o good_a heart_n he_o will_v be_v so_o still_o you_o shall_v see_v this_o isaiah_n 32._o 8._o the_o liberal_a man_n will_v devise_v of_o liberal_a thing_n that_o be_v he_o will_v study_v and_o think_v with_o himself_o which_o of_o god_n servant_n stand_v in_o need_n and_o how_o he_o may_v show_v himself_o merciful_a to_o they_o and_o he_o will_v continue_v his_o liberality_n another_o notable_a place_n there_o be_v for_o this_o heb._n 6._o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o the_o hebrew_n verse_n 9_o he_o be_v persuade_v there_o be_v better_a thing_n in_o they_o than_o in_o such_o hypocrite_n as_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o before_o and_o such_o as_o accompany_v salvation_n and_o verse_n 10._o he_o give_v this_o for_o the_o reason_n in_o that_o say_v he_o you_o have_v minister_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o yet_o minister_v and_o he_o add_v verse_n 11._o we_o desire_v that_o every_o one_o of_o you_o show_v the_o same_o diligence_n to_o the_o end_n and_o why_o so_o to_o the_o full_a assurance_n of_o hope_n say_v he_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v there_o be_v no_o full_a assurance_n of_o hope_n no_o not_o in_o so_o excellent_a a_o fruit_n of_o faith_n as_o this_o be_v unless_o you_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n two_o objection_n you_o may_v haply_o make_v against_o this_o which_o i_o must_v give_v you_o to_o answer_v to_o that_o in_o many_o that_o have_v be_v true_o regenerate_v great_a intermission_n 1._o and_o give_v over_o of_o good_a duty_n have_v be_v find_v the_o fruit_n of_o grace_n have_v be_v strange_o interrupt_v and_o break_v off_o in_o they_o he_o that_o have_v come_v to_o david_n at_o that_o time_n when_o after_o his_o adultery_n he_o practise_v the_o death_n of_o uriah_n or_o to_o peter_n when_o he_o forswear_v his_o master_n and_o with_o such_o direful_a curse_n deny_v that_o he_o know_v he_o will_v have_v be_v able_a to_o discern_v no_o more_o fruit_n of_o grace_n nor_o conscience_n of_o their_o duty_n to_o god_n in_o they_o than_o in_o saul_n or_o judas_n a_o man_n therefore_o you_o will_v say_v may_v be_v god_n child_n and_o have_v a_o sound_a heart_n though_o he_o be_v not_o thus_o constant_a in_o his_o obedience_n as_o you_o have_v say_v to_o this_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o though_o in_o the_o time_n of_o temptation_n or_o of_o some_o spiritual_a desertion_n the_o case_n may_v be_v thus_o with_o god_n child_n for_o a_o answ._n time_n yet_o he_o can_v continue_v so_o but_o he_o shall_v recover_v himself_o and_o do_v his_o first_o work_n again_o according_a to_o that_o psal._n 55._o 22._o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o righteous_a to_o fall_v for_o ever_o second_o that_o during_o the_o time_n of_o this_o his_o fall_n and_o give_v over_o the_o practice_n of_o those_o good_a duty_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o perform_v the_o child_n of_o god_n have_v lose_v the_o assurance_n of_o his_o hope_n and_o of_o the_o soundness_n and_o uprightness_n of_o his_o own_o heart_n neither_o can_v any_o other_o man_n or_o himself_o say_v that_o any_o good_a thing_n he_o do_v before_o be_v do_v in_o truth_n now_o he_o have_v give_v it_o over_o and_o indeed_o if_o thou_o observe_v it_o thou_o shall_v find_v that_o none_o such_o take_v any_o comfort_n at_o all_o to_o hear_v or_o think_v of_o any_o good_a thing_n he_o do_v in_o time_n past_a herein_o i_o may_v appeal_v to_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o one_o of_o you_o if_o any_o such_o be_v here_o that_o be_v in_o time_n past_o diligent_a zealous_a and_o conscionable_a preacher_n or_o such_o as_o use_v conscionable_o and_o careful_o to_o pray_v in_o private_a or_o such_o as_o be_v careful_a to_o have_v the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n in_o your_o family_n and_o have_v now_o quite_o give_v over_o these_o thing_n be_v it_o any_o comfort_n to_o you_o that_o you_o be_v such_o kind_n of_o people_n in_o time_n past_a nay_o be_v it_o not_o rather_o a_o vexation_n to_o your_o mind_n to_o think_v of_o those_o time_n because_o your_o heart_n be_v apt_a to_o tell_v you_o all_o that_o be_v do_v but_o in_o hypocrisy_n certain_o till_o you_o recover_v yourselves_o and_o do_v your_o first_o work_n again_o you_o can_v have_v any_o assurance_n that_o there_o be_v ever_o any_o truth_n or_o soundness_n in_o your_o heart_n yea_o but_o will_n you_o say_v though_o they_o that_o be_v quite_o fall_v from_o the_o good_a duty_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o perform_v can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o 2._o their_o heart_n yet_o there_o be_v many_o a_o one_o that_o have_v a_o good_a heart_n that_o yet_o find_v great_a inconstancy_n in_o himself_o and_o that_o he_o oft_o omit_v the_o good_a duty_n he_o shall_v perform_v and_o have_v not_o at_o all_o time_n that_o aptness_n and_o alacrity_n in_o prayer_n and_o such_o like_a holy_a exercise_n as_o he_o have_v at_o some_o time_n can_v such_o a_o one_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o the_o uprightness_n and_o soundness_n of_o his_o heart_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o a_o good_a man_n may_v decay_v in_o the_o answ._n measure_n of_o his_o practice_n and_o do_v of_o good_a duty_n even_o through_o a_o natural_a decay_n of_o his_o spirit_n by_o age_n or_o sickness_n second_o he_o may_v also_o lose_v that_o heat_n and_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n that_o sometime_o he_o have_v this_o be_v plain_a in_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n apoc._n 2._o 4._o he_o have_v leave_v his_o first_o love_n and_o yet_o have_v much_o grace_n in_o he_o still_o verse_n 2._o i_o know_v how_o thou_o can_v not_o forbear_v they_o that_o be_v evil_a and_o verse_n 6._o thou_o hate_v the_o deed_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_o which_o i_o also_o hate_n yea_o without_o daily_a watchfulness_n and_o stir_v up_o of_o ourselves_o it_o will_v not_o be_v possible_a to_o keep_v ourselves_o from_o this_o decay_n in_o our_o first_o love_n and_o fervency_n in_o good_a duty_n if_o we_o do_v not_o exhort_v and_o stir_v up_o ourselves_o daily_o we_o shall_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v harden_v through_o the_o deceitfulness_n of_o sin_n heb._n 3._o 13._o but_o yet_o this_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o every_o regenerate_a man_n ordinary_o unless_o it_o be_v in_o that_o case_n of_o tentation_n and_o spiritual_a desertion_n that_o i_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o former_a objection_n first_o he_o do_v still_o perform_v good_a duty_n of_o conscience_n towards_o god_n though_o not_o with_o that_o cheerfulness_n and_o aptness_n as_o at_o other_o time_n he_o keep_v his_o way_n still_o and_o go_v on_o though_o not_o so_o fast_o and_o comfortable_o as_o he_o be_v wont_a grieve_v for_o his_o decay_n and_o strive_v against_o his_o dulness_n and_o this_o god_n great_o delight_v in_o even_o in_o this_o labour_n of_o love_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o heb._n 6._o 10._o second_o he_o rest_v not_o in_o any_o thing_n he_o have_v do_v but_o be_v careful_a to_o persevere_v and_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n for_o this_o we_o have_v two_o notable_a example_n first_o in_o david_n psal._n 146._o 2._o i_o will_v praise_v the_o lord_n during_o my_o life_n as_o long_o as_o i_o have_v any_o be_v i_o will_v sing_v unto_o my_o god_n and_o 101._o 2._o i_o will_v do_v wise_o in_o the_o perfect_a way_n till_o thou_o come_v to_o i_o and_o psal._n 119._o 11●…_n i_o have_v apply_v my_o heart_n to_o fulfil_v
cast_v off_o by_o 1._o unfeigned_a repentance_n all_o our_o know_a sin_n before_o we_o come_v in_o this_o respect_n the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v commend_v in_o begin_v our_o public_a worship_n with_o a_o holy_a and_o good_a confession_n of_o sin_n it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o man_n will_v make_v more_o conscience_n to_o join_v with_o the_o congregation_n in_o it_o and_o to_o do_v it_o with_o feeling_n and_o understand_v heart_n than_o the_o most_o do_v this_o be_v that_o that_o be_v signify_v by_o put_v off_o the_o shoe_n and_o wash_v of_o the_o clothes_n exo._n 3._o 5_o and_o 19_o 10._o and_o be_v more_o plain_o teach_v i_o be_o 1._o 21._o lay_v apart_o all_o filthiness_n and_o superfluity_n of_o naughtiness_n and_o receive_v with_o meekness_n the_o engraft_a word_n in_o this_o respect_n it_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v observe_v that_o ezek._n 23._o 38_o 39_o the_o lord_n note_v this_o for_o a_o circumstance_n that_o great_o aggravate_v their_o whoredom_n and_o murder_n that_o they_o come_v the_o same_o day_n into_o god_n sanctuary_n and_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o then_o that_o so_o many_o receive_v no_o profit_n but_o hurt_v rather_o by_o the_o word_n be_v guilty_a of_o heinous_a sin_n they_o come_v to_o god_n house_n without_o the_o least_o motion_n of_o remorse_n for_o they_o or_o purpose_n to_o forsake_v they_o yea_o many_o come_v on_o the_o lord_n day_n to_o god_n house_n have_v spend_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o night_n before_o some_o in_o drunkenness_n some_o in_o game_n and_o other_o disorder_n we_o must_v labour_v to_o bring_v our_o heart_n to_o a_o religious_a fear_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o 2._o god_n with_o who_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v and_o in_o who_o presence_n we_o be_v to_o appear_v in_o a_o special_a sort_n set_a thyself_o as_o in_o god_n presence_n and_o that_o will_v keep_v thy_o heart_n from_o wander_v act_n 10._o 33._o we_o be_v all_o here_o present_a before_o god_n say_v cornelius_n to_o hear_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v command_v thou_o of_o god_n that_o which_o solomon_n use_v as_o a_o reason_n to_o restrain_v man_n from_o rashness_n and_o irreverence_n in_o prayer_n serve_v as_o fit_o to_o restrain_v from_o rashness_n and_o irreverence_n in_o hear_v for_o reverence_n be_v as_o well_o require_v when_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o as_o when_o we_o speak_v to_o god_n eccl._n 5._o 1._o be_v not_o rash_a with_o thy_o mouth_n nor_o let_v thy_o heart_n be_v hasty_a to_o utter_v a_o thing_n before_o god_n for_o god_n be_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o thou_o be_v on_o the_o earth_n this_o fear_n of_o god_n rise_v from_o the_o apprehension_n of_o his_o glorious_a presence_n be_v a_o singular_a mean_n to_o prepare_v the_o heart_n to_o hear_v well_o thus_o god_n prepare_v abraham_n gen._n 15._o 12._o a_o fearful_a darkness_n fall_v upon_o he_o first_o and_o then_o the_o lord_n deliver_v to_o he_o the_o word_n of_o promise_n serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n psal._n 2._o 11._o and_o 5._o 7._o i_o will_v come_v to_o thy_o house_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o thy_o mercy_n and_o in_o thy_o fear_n will_v i_o worship_v towards_o thy_o holy_a temple_n no_o marvel_n then_o though_o many_o profit_n so_o little_a both_o in_o their_o come_n into_o god_n house_n and_o sit_v in_o it_o the_o very_a trial_n of_o their_o countenance_n testify_v against_o they_o as_o esa._n 3._o 9_o that_o there_o be_v no_o fear_n nor_o reverence_n of_o god_n presence_n in_o their_o heart_n thou_o must_v rid_v thy_o heart_n of_o all_o prejudice_n and_o hard_a conceit_n of_o he_o thou_o be_v to_o hear_v and_o labour_n to_o be_v well_o persuade_v of_o thy_o teacher_n this_o have_v great_a 3._o force_n to_o further_a our_o profit_v by_o that_o we_o hear_v this_o be_v that_o that_o make_v herod_n himself_o not_o only_o to_o hear_v john_n glad_o but_o also_o to_o practice_v many_o thing_n he_o teach_v mar._n 6._o 20._o this_o make_v paul_n so_o earnest_a in_o protest_v his_o love_n and_o declare_v his_o affection_n to_o they_o he_o write_v to_o that_o he_o may_v win_v they_o thereby_o to_o have_v a_o good_a opinion_n of_o he_o because_o he_o know_v how_o much_o this_o will_v avail_v to_o their_o profit_v by_o his_o doctrine_n see_v how_o many_o word_n he_o use_v to_o persuade_v both_o the_o roman_n and_o corinthian_n of_o this_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o epistle_n unto_o they_o rom._n 1._o 8_o 15._o 1_o cor._n 1._o 4_o 8._o this_o make_v he_o so_o earnest_a with_o the_o faithful_a in_o that_o exhortation_n and_o we_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n to_o know_v they_o which_o labour_n among_o you_o and_o be_v over_o you_o in_o the_o lord_n and_o admonish_v you_o and_o esteem_v they_o very_o high_o in_o love_n for_o their_o work_n sake_n 1_o thess._n 5._o 12_o 13._o we_o must_v bring_v with_o we_o a_o appetite_n even_o a_o earnest_a desire_n to_o profit_n by_o that_o 4._o we_o shall_v hear_v as_o new_o bear_v babe_n desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n 1_o pet._n 2._o 2._o this_o will_v great_o further_a our_o profit_v for_o the_o lord_n use_v to_o fill_v the_o hungry_a with_o good_a thing_n and_o to_o send_v the_o rich_a empty_a away_o luke_n 1._o 53._o we_o must_v bring_v with_o we_o a_o honest_a heart_n even_o a_o sincere_a purpose_n and_o resolution_n 5._o to_o obey_v the_o word_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o to_o learn_v to_o know_v the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o that_o we_o may_v direct_v our_o life_n according_a to_o it_o resolve_v as_o isaiah_n 2._o 3._o come_v you_o and_o let_v we_o go_v up_o to_o the_o mountain_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v teach_v we_o his_o way_n and_o we_o will_v walk_v in_o his_o path_n and_o as_o psal._n 119._o 34._o i_o will_v observe_v thy_o law_n with_o my_o whole_a heart_n such_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o profit_v if_o any_o man_n will_v do_v his_o will_n he_o shall_v know_v of_o the_o doctrine_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n joh._n 7._o 17._o what_o man_n be_v he_o that_o fear_v the_o lord_n he_o shall_v he_o teach_v in_o the_o way_n that_o he_o shall_v choose_v psal._n 25._o 12._o we_o must_v use_v to_o pray_v before_o we_o come_v we_o must_v pro._n 2._o 3._o call_v unto_o 6._o god_n for_o knowledge_n and_o cry_v for_o understanding_n verse_n 5._o then_o shall_v we_o understand_v the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o find_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v add_v uer._n 6._o for_o the_o lord_n give_v wisdom_n out_o of_o his_o mouth_n come_v knowledge_n and_o understanding_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v it_o come_v not_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o excellent_a man_n that_o thou_o can_v hear_v it_o come_v from_o the_o lord_n only_o and_o therefore_o thou_o must_v seek_v to_o he_o for_o it_o the_o hundred_n and_o seventh_z lecture_n on_o october_n xxix_o mdcxi_o john_n four_o li_n lii_o liii_o and_o as_o he_o be_v now_o go_v down_o his_o servant_n meet_v he_o and_o tell_v he_o say_v thy_o son_n live_v then_o inquire_v he_o of_o they_o the_o hour_n when_o he_o begin_v to_o amend_v and_o they_o say_v unto_o he_o yesterday_o at_o the_o seven_o hour_n the_o fever_n leave_v he_o so_o the_o father_n know_v that_o it_o be_v at_o the_o same_o hour_n in_o the_o which_o jesus_n say_v unto_o he_o thy_o son_n live_v and_o himself_o believe_v and_o his_o whole_a house_n we_o have_v already_o hear_v that_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 46_o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n the_o evangelist_n do_v set_v down_o the_o history_n of_o the_o second_o miracle_n that_o christ_n wrought_v in_o galilee_n in_o cure_v of_o the_o son_n of_o a_o certain_a ruler_n and_o that_o the_o history_n stand_v upon_o four_o part_n first_o the_o occasion_n that_o be_v offer_v unto_o christ_n to_o do_v this_o miracle_n uers._fw-la 46_o 47_o second_o the_o manner_n how_o christ_n wrought_v this_o miracle_n vers._n 48_o 49._o and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o 50._o three_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o this_o miracle_n from_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o 50_o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 53._o four_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o story_n in_o the_o 54_o verse_n and_o in_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o this_o miracle_n which_o be_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o story_n we_o have_v hear_v there_o be_v three_o principal_a thing_n to_o be_v observe_v first_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o conversion_n of_o this_o ruler_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o 50_o verse_n and_o the_o man_n believe_v the_o word_n that_o jesus_n have_v speak_v unto_o he_o and_o go_v his_o way_n second_o the_o mean_n whereby_o this_o faith_n that_o be_v begin_v in_o he_o be_v